Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n abolish_v good_a great_a 174 3 2.1336 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A06347 An excellent and plaine discourse of the church, whereby the godlie may knowe and discerne the true Church, from the Romish Church, and all other false and counterfet churches, as well for matters of doctrine, as discipline, &c. Written in Frenche by M. Bartrand de Loque, a godlie minister of Dolphenine. And faithfully translated into English, by M.T.W. Seene and allowed; Traité de l'eglise. English Loque, Bertrand de.; T. W. (Thomas Wilcox), 1549?-1608. 1582 (1582) STC 16813; ESTC S103377 172,896 422

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

light_n be_v far_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n itself_o be_v in_o diverse_a who_o live_v under_o the_o law_n 5.11_o 1._o thes_n 5.11_o and_o also_o though_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o exhort_v one_o another_o and_o to_o teach_v one_o another_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o godliness_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v not_o superfluous_a or_o vain_a in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o self_n same_o god_n that_o have_v command_v father_n to_o instruct_v their_o child_n and_o all_o we_o to_o admonish_v one_o a_o other_o have_v also_o ordain_v the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o practise_v and_o exercise_v not_o for_o some_o few_o year_n only_o but_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thus_o much_o touch_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o adversary_n and_o such_o as_o set_v themselves_o aganin_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n now_o let_v we_o bring_v forth_o our_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v that_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n administer_v in_o the_o church_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v always_o requisite_a and_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o former_a proposition_n by_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n write_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o saint_n matthew_n go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n 28.19.20_o mat._n 28.19.20_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v whatsoever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o and_o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n for_o after_o the_o commandment_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o to_o administer_v baptism_n under_o which_o sacrament_n the_o other_o also_o of_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v contain_v because_o the_o disciple_n may_v doubt_v or_o fear_v their_o charge_n as_o be_v great_a in_o labour_n and_o hard_a to_o execute_v jesus_n christ_n add_v a_o promise_n of_o his_o assistance_n not_o for_o ten_o or_o twenty_o year_n only_o but_o for_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o he_o manifest_o set_v out_o and_o declare_v two_o thing_n one_o that_o he_o will_v and_o ordein_v that_o the_o ministry_n be_v exercise_v in_o the_o church_n not_o for_o one_o age_n only_o but_o continual_o unto_o the_o consummation_n and_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o promise_v that_o although_o satan_n subtle_o devise_v &_o invent_v and_o practice_v all_o that_o he_o can_v to_o hinder_v the_o ministry_n &_o the_o work_n of_o god_n servant_n and_o the_o tyrant_n by_o their_o practice_n and_o violence_n enforce_v themselves_o to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n to_o overthrow_v &_o to_o bring_v to_o naught_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yet_o he_o will_v by_o his_o godly_a and_o heavenly_a power_n always_o maintain_v his_o truth_n in_o the_o world_n and_o preserve_v his_o church_n therein_o by_o the_o ministry_n and_o labour_n of_o his_o faithful_a pastor_n the_o second_o reason_n 17_o rom._n 1●_n 17_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n say_v to_o the_o roman_n that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o declare_v that_o god_n have_v accustom_v to_o plant_v faith_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o this_o outward_a mean_n but_o that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o beget_v faith_n in_o we_o after_o some_o other_o fashion_n and_o by_o some_o other_o mean_v although_o it_o be_v to_o we_o incomprehensible_a even_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o self_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_a which_o he_o use_v or_o serve_v himself_o with_o to_o give_v we_o faith_n by_o so_o that_o they_o which_o will_v have_v faith_n without_o the_o preach_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n do_v as_o much_o as_o though_o they_o will_v live_v without_o meat_n &_o drink_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o our_o bodily_a life_n now_o hereupon_o we_o take_v and_o frame_v our_o argument_n thus_o faith_n be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o always_o necessary_a for_o man_n but_o faith_n be_v give_v unto_o man_n from_o god_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v in_o all_o time_n and_o always_o necessary_a for_o man_n the_o three_o reason_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v seal_n of_o the_o word_n to_o seal_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o which_o be_v therein_o contain_v already_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o union_n fellowship_n and_o partake_v which_o we_o have_v in_o jesus_n christ_n it_o follow_v that_o where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v there_o we_o can_v have_v any_o sacrament_n for_o as_o a_o seal_n be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a yea_o be_v not_o allow_v a_o seal_n unless_o be_v bind_v or_o set_v to_o some_o instrument_n or_o writing_n for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a yea_o indeed_o be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v not_o join_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v to_o confirm_v the_o same_o unto_o us._n whereupon_o saint_n augustine_n have_v sometime_o say_v 13._o augu._n sup_v johan._n hom._n 13._o let_v the_o word_n be_v join_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n of_o what_o word_n speak_v he_o very_o not_o of_o a_o word_n mumble_v up_o murmur_v or_o whisper_v without_o understanding_n over_o the_o element_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v to_o the_o faithful_a &_o receive_v of_o they_o through_o faith_n as_o he_o himself_o make_v it_o plain_a wlien_a speak_v of_o baptism_n he_o add_v this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v by_o which_o baptism_n be_v consecrate_v and_o hallow_a ●●_o 1._o cor._n 11._o ●●_o to_o have_v power_n to_o make_v clean_o now_o from_o that_o which_o be_v above_o say_v we_o reason_n after_o this_o manner_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v we_o to_o celebrate_v it_o and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o preach_v or_o show_v forth_o his_o death_n until_o his_o come_n again_o but_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o supper_n can_v not_o be_v perform_v without_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n the_o four_o reason_n jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v and_o establish_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n 14.11_o ephe._n 14.11_o for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n and_o unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v till_o that_o christ_n be_v perfect_a in_o we_o and_o have_v in_o we_o his_o full_a growth_n and_o increase_n but_o we_o can_v not_o obtain_v such_o perfection_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n at_o what_o time_n god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o for_o as_o saint_n paul_n say_v we_o know_v in_o part_n and_o we_o prophesy_v in_o part_n but_o when_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a be_v come_v 9.10_o 2._o cor._n 13._o 9.10_o then_o that_o which_o be_v in_o part_n shall_v be_v abolish_v wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v and_o place_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o then_o god_n shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o these_o reason_n be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o present_a to_o teach_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o holy_a ministry_n be_v continual_o requisite_a and_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o indeed_o the_o lord_n have_v for_o our_o good_a &_o salvation_n establish_v the_o same_o to_o abide_v in_o all_o age_n therein_o apply_v and_o frame_v himself_o to_o our_o weakness_n which_o be_v so_o great_a we_o be_v corrupt_v through_o sin_n that_o without_o this_o mean_n meet_v and_o agreeable_a to_o our_o nature_n we_o can_v not_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o point_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o if_o god_n shall_v speak_v unto_o we_o in_o his_o majesty_n we_o can_v not_o at_o
abolish_v the_o name_n either_o of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o church_n hereby_o therefore_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o deny_v nor_o but_o that_o the_o church_n over_o which_o he_o bear_v rule_v by_o his_o tyranny_n remain_v church_n still_o but_o we_o say_v that_o he_o have_v profane_v they_o by_o his_o ungodliness_n and_o so_o poison_v they_o by_o his_o false_a doctrine_n that_o there_o appear_v amongst_o they_o a_o picture_n or_o image_n of_o babylon_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n of_o god_n to_o conclude_v we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v church_n first_o because_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v miraculous_o preserve_v amongst_o they_o the_o remnant_n of_o his_o people_n though_o they_o be_v poor_o and_o thin_o scatter_v abroad_o second_o because_o there_o remain_v amongst_o they_o some_o mark_n and_o roken_n of_o the_o church_n special_o these_o token_n the_o power_n and_o effectualness_n whereof_o can_v be_v abolish_v neither_o by_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o devil_n neither_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n because_o the_o mark_n which_o we_o have_v principal_o to_o regard_v in_o this_o dispute_n or_o question_n be_v blot_v out_o there_o we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o amongst_o they_o a_o right_a show_n and_o lawful_a form_n of_o a_o church_n neither_o in_o any_o of_o their_o particular_a assembly_n neither_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o caluine_n but_o though_o we_o may_v in_o deed_n accord_n and_o agree_v to_o this_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o baptism_n which_o it_o have_v yet_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o infer_v thereupon_o that_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o take_v and_o hold_v it_o for_o the_o true_a church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n for_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n they_o be_v altogether_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n and_o as_o concern_v baptism_n albeit_o they_o add_v many_o vain_a and_o superstitious_a ceremony_n minister_v in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n and_o not_o understand_v of_o they_o yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o substance_n remain_v and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o principal_a or_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o form_n as_o we_o have_v show_v now_o if_o one_o will_v demand_v why_o then_o suffer_v we_o not_o our_o infant_n to_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o romish_a church_n there_o to_o be_v baptize_v see_v that_o the_o baptism_n which_o be_v there_o minister_v be_v good_a i_o answer_v that_o we_o suffer_v it_o not_o because_o god_n have_v give_v we_o grace_n to_o know_v the_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n which_o be_v there_o commit_v 5.21_o 1._o cor._n 10.14_o 1._o joh._n 5.21_o to_o which_o we_o may_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n stick_v cleave_v or_o consent_v whatsoever_o appearance_n and_o show_n of_o good_a we_o suppose_v may_v come_v thereby_o either_o to_o we_o or_o to_o our_o child_n for_o saint_n paul_n say_v 3.8_o rom._n 3.8_o that_o we_o ought_v careful_o to_o look_v unto_o ourselves_o not_o to_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v thereof_o and_o also_o because_o that_o through_o god_n grace_n and_o goodness_n we_o have_v a_o mean_a and_o way_n open_v to_o have_v our_o foresay_a child_n baptize_v in_o the_o reform_v church_n without_o any_o abuse_n error_n superstition_n or_o idolatry_n they_o will_v say_v yet_o further_o that_o jesus_n christ_n cease_v not_o to_o approve_v and_o allow_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o time_n though_o it_o have_v in_o it_o store_n of_o error_n which_o he_o well_o declare_v when_o he_o be_v there_o present_a at_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o feast_n wherefore_o then_o do_v not_o we_o approve_v also_o the_o romishe_a church_n although_o it_o have_v error_n in_o it_o for_o if_o a_o church_n shall_v for_o some_o abuse_n fault_n or_o error_n lose_v the_o name_n of_o the_o true_a church_n where_o shall_v we_o then_o find_v one_o alone_a in_o the_o whole_a world_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o we_o hold_v not_o that_o a_o true_a church_n lose_v the_o name_n of_o a_o true_a church_n for_o some_o abuse_n or_o error_n therein_o for_o s._n paul_n leave_v not_o of_o to_o name_v the_o faithful_a people_n of_o corinthus_n the_o church_n although_o he_o blame_v and_o reprove_v they_o for_o many_o error_n and_o corruption_n not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o manner_n but_o also_o concern_v their_o doctrine_n and_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o that_o particular_a church_n be_v never_o so_o perfect_a in_o this_o world_n but_o that_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o subject_a to_o error_n and_o go_v astray_o but_o we_o right_o hold_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n aught_o to_o lose_v the_o name_n of_o a_o true_a church_n because_o she_o have_v degenerate_v and_o go_v out_o of_o kind_n from_o the_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a church_n for_o the_o true_a ancient_a and_o catholic_a church_n cleave_v to_o her_o only_a head_n and_o husband_n jesus_n christ_n she_o believe_v his_o word_n and_o follow_v he_o she_o be_v faithful_a to_o he_o without_o commit_v adultery_n with_o idol_n which_o the_o romishe_a church_n do_v not_o which_o thing_n we_o have_v a_o little_a while_n ago_o show_v second_o as_o concern_v that_o that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v approve_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o time_n we_o say_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o there_o be_v very_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o estate_n of_o that_o church_n then_o as_o it_o be_v and_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n such_o a_o one_o as_o we_o behold_v it_o at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o abuse_n and_o corruption_n as_o well_o of_o doctrine_n as_o of_o sacrament_n &_o the_o manifest_a idolatry_n which_o bear_v sway_n at_o this_o present_a in_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n which_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v because_o that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v make_v much_o a_o do_v to_o beat_v down_o the_o idol_n and_o to_o reform_v other_o abuse_n if_o they_o have_v have_v place_n there_o as_o he_o overthrewe_v the_o table_n of_o the_o money_n changer_n 2.14_o joh._n 2.14_o and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n those_o that_o there_o sell_v open_o sheep_n and_o dove_n moreover_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o reject_v or_o disallow_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n because_o that_o the_o time_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v wherein_o he_o shall_v put_v a_o end_n unto_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n 12..13_o levit._fw-la 17.3_o deut._n 12..13_o wherefore_o for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o faithful_a have_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n whereby_o it_o be_v appoint_v they_o not_o to_o search_v or_o seek_v new_a place_n to_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n in_o but_o to_o come_v and_o to_o stay_v themselves_o within_o the_o court_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n or_o of_o the_o temple_n jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o despise_v this_o place_n but_o we_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o corruption_n be_v there_o no_o faithful_a man_n be_v enforce_v to_o cleave_v or_o stick_v to_o any_o superstitious_a manner_n or_o custom_n which_o be_v not_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o all_o there_o be_v full_a of_o superstition_n and_o manifest_a idolatry_n so_o they_o will_v constrain_v and_o enforce_v the_o faithful_a by_o fire_n and_o sword_n to_o consent_v thereto_o and_o to_o pollute_v and_o defile_v themselves_o therewith_o against_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o god_n express_v forbid_v last_o to_o what_o point_n do_v jesus_n christ_n bring_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n when_o the_o high_a priest_n scribe_n and_o pharisee_n show_v themselves_o great_a mad_a man_n not_o do_v their_o duty_n towards_o it_o do_v he_o not_o take_v his_o vineyard_n from_o these_o husbandman_n who_o do_v not_o give_v he_o the_o fruit_n which_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o commit_v the_o same_o unto_o other_o that_o be_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o yield_v he_o fruit_n in_o their_o season_n even_o so_o likewise_o have_v the_o lord_n do_v therewith_o in_o the_o popedom_n he_o have_v not_o destroy_v his_o church_n but_o have_v only_o change_v the_o estate_n thereof_o take_v it_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o popish_a priest_n and_o place_v it_o again_o under_o the_o government_n and_o charge_n of_o other_o guider_n and_o leader_n who_o can_v see_v more_o clear_o and_o be_v of_o better_a trust_n as_o it_o be_v speak_v in_o saint_n matthew_n 22.40_o mat._n 22.40_o under_o the_o similitude_n or_o parable_n of_o the_o vineyard_n to_o conclude_v if_o they_o ask_v what_o shall_v become_v then_o of_o our_o predecessor_n who_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n
wherefore_o whatsoever_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o they_o conformable_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o ought_v to_o receive_v the_o same_o without_o any_o scruple_n or_o doubt_n but_o if_o they_o propound_v unto_o we_o and_o set_v out_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o we_o ought_v and_o we_o may_v without_o any_o difficulty_n or_o danger_n reject_v and_o refuse_v they_o as_o suspect_v and_o dangerous_a doctrine_n for_o as_o saint_n jerome_n have_v sometime_o say_v jerem._n hieron_n in_o 9_o cap._n jerem._n we_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o error_n of_o our_o father_n and_o predecessor_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o teach_v us._n 5._o gerson_n par_fw-fr 1._o the_o exam_n doctrine_n abbas_n panormita_n epist_n de_fw-fr electia_fw-la one_o &_o elect_v potest_fw-la cap._n 5._o whereupon_o also_o gerson_n and_o panormitan_n have_v conclude_v that_o in_o matter_n which_o concern_v faith_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o bishop_n may_v not_o determine_v and_o decree_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o if_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v come_v so_o far_o as_o to_o decline_v and_o go_v aside_o either_o through_o malice_n or_o through_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o simple_a man_n allege_v in_o that_o council_n the_o word_n of_o god_n ought_v rather_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o yield_v unto_o then_o all_o they_o let_v we_o enter_v or_o come_v now_o to_o our_o advice_n and_o let_v we_o bring_v forth_o and_o allege_v our_o reason_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o that_o great_a company_n of_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n which_o be_v in_o the_o wilderness_n with_o who_o god_n have_v make_v a_o covenant_n and_o have_v make_v they_o bind_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o benefit_n and_o good_a turn_n &_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v visible_a sign_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o great_a company_n i_o say_v be_v a_o very_a goodly_a and_o a_o very_a excellent_a church_n but_o they_o be_v vile_o deceive_v and_o err_v foul_o when_o forsake_v the_o commandment_n they_o make_v unto_o themselves_o a_o golden_a calf_n offer_v and_o give_v unto_o it_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o yea_o and_o aaron_n himself_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v not_o so_o constant_o and_o bold_o withstand_v they_o as_o he_o ought_v but_o rather_o consent_v thereto_o indeed_o wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v the_o second_o reason_n the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n do_v offer_v and_o give_v the_o holy_a supper_n to_o little_a infant_n stay_v and_o ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o place_n of_o saint_n john_n except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 9.15_o john_n 9.15_o &_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o this_o custom_n be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n innocent_a saint_n cyprian_n and_o saint_n augustine_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o their_o write_n but_o now_o this_o be_v not_o any_o more_o use_v for_o child_n which_o can_v not_o prove_v and_o examine_v themselves_o be_v not_o at_o this_o day_n receive_v to_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o sacrament_n wherefore_o the_o church_n in_o old_a time_n have_v err_v or_o else_o it_o err_v now_o but_o if_o we_o will_v answer_v that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o change_v such_o custom_n and_o manner_n i_o reply_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o now_o the_o question_n be_v not_o here_o of_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a in_o the_o use_n but_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v always_o constant_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o any_o change_n as_o to_o say_v that_o to_o day_n it_o have_v one_o sense_n and_o understanding_n &_o to_o morrow_n another_o wherefore_o if_o the_o place_n of_o s._n john_n command_v to_o give_v the_o supper_n to_o little_a infant_n of_o necessity_n as_o the_o forename_a ancient_a father_n have_v understand_v and_o expound_v the_o same_o the_o church_n have_v ●one_n well_o in_o time_n heretofore_o to_o follow_v that_o commandment_n and_o at_o this_o time_n it_o err_v in_o not_o follow_v it_o any_o long_o or_o else_o if_o the_o say_a place_n be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v proper_o unto_o the_o holy_a supper_n neither_o command_v to_o distribute_v and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o infant_n but_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n require_v that_o he_o to_o who_o we_o must_v administer_v the_o say_a sacrament_n have_v knowledge_n to_o try_v and_o examine_v himself_o according_a to_o saint_n paul_n doctrine_n 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o as_o indeed_o this_o be_v the_o pure_a and_o only_a truth_n it_o follow_v then_o that_o the_o church_n have_v in_o former_a time_n err_v to_o admit_v little_a infant_n to_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o that_o at_o this_o day_n it_o do_v well_o to_o practice_v the_o contrary_n the_o three_o reason_n if_o the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v saint_n paul_n have_v without_o cause_n fear_v 11.28_o 1._o cor._n 11.28_o lest_o the_o corinthian_n who_o he_o call_v a_o church_n shall_v through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o serpent_n be_v corrupt_v 11.3_o 2._o cor._n 11.3_o and_o turn_v away_o from_o the_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o indeed_o in_o vain_a shall_v he_o have_v call_v the_o assembly_n of_o the_o corinthian_n and_o galathian_o 1.2_o gala._n 1.2_o church_n which_o yet_o notwithstanding_o err_v in_o doctrine_n in_o faith_n in_o manner_n and_o in_o life_n but_o saint_n paul_n do_v nothing_o of_o all_o this_o without_o cause_n or_o in_o vain_a otherwise_o saint_n paul_n himself_o shall_v have_v be_v deceive_v wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o four_o reason_n those_o that_o can_v err_v have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o the_o church_n have_v need_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n for_o jesus_n christ_n give_v it_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n have_v command_v it_o to_o demand_v and_o ask_v of_o god_n 6.12_o mat._n 6.12_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v the_o five_o reason_n the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o old_a time_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v oftentimes_o reprove_v of_o error_n by_o the_o prophet_n which_o thing_n declare_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o this_o world_n without_o will_n and_o deed_n to_o err_v but_o to_o the_o end_n i_o may_v not_o be_v overlong_o in_o recite_v by_o piecemeal_o and_o as_o it_o be_v one_o by_o one_o all_o the_o sentence_n which_o make_v mention_v of_o the_o fall_v of_o the_o church_n let_v man_n read_v that_o which_o be_v write_v thereof_o in_o these_o place_n touch_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o verse_n 21._o to_o the_o 24._o verse_n isaiah_n isaiah_n isaiah_n 3._o for_o 8.9_o isaiah_n 5.13_o isaiah_n 30._o verse_n 9_o to_o the_o 13._o ver_fw-la isaiah_n 59_o for_o 2._o unto_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la isai_n 64._o ver_fw-la 6.7_o jere._n 2_o ver_fw-la 5._o jeremiah_n jeremiah_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chap._n jere._n 3._o ver_fw-la 2.3.20_o jere._n 4._o ver_fw-la 22._o jeremiah_n 5._o for_o 1._o unto_o the_o 15._o ver_fw-la and_o afterward_o from_o the_o 19_o ver_fw-la to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n jere._n 6._o ver_fw-la 7._o unto_o the_o 11._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 8._o for_o 4._o unto_o the_o 11._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 9_o for_o 3._o unto_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 13._o verse_n 10._o unto_o the_o 15._o verse_n jeremiah_n 22._o even_o unto_o the_o end_n jeremiah_n 16._o ver_fw-la 11.12_o jeremiah_n 18_o ver_fw-la 13._o unto_o the_o 18._o ver_fw-la ezechiel_n 5._o for_o 6._o unto_o the_o 12._o ezechiel_n ezechiel_n ver_fw-la ezechiel_n 22._o for_o 3._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n ezechiel_n 33._o ver_fw-la 24._o unto_o the_o 30._o deutro_n deutro_n ver_fw-la deuteronomie_n 32._o for_o 5.6.32.33_o touch_v the_o ingratitude_n and_o unthankfulness_n of_o the_o church_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o for_o 2.5_o isaiah_n isaiah_n isaiah_n 5.47_o isaiah_n 43._o ver_fw-la 21._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n isaiah_n 17._o for_o 10.11_o hosea_n jeremiah_n ezechiel_n zachariah_n deuteron_n hosea_n isaiah_n 63._o for_o 9.10_o jerem._n 2._o for_o 6.9.21.22_o jeremiah_n 12._o for_o ●_o ezechiel_n 16._o for_o 15._o unto_o the_o 24._o ver_fw-la zachariah_n 11._o for_o 8._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n deuteronomie_n 32._o for_o 15.18.23_o hosea_n 12._o for_o 1.9_o hosea_n 13._o for_o 6._o malachi_n 1._o ver_fw-la 2.8_o touch_v the_o obstinacy_n and_o rebellion_n of_o the_o church_n isaiah_n isaiah_n see_v isaiah_n 1._o for_o 5._o unto_o the_o 7._o ver_fw-la isaiah_n ●_o ver_fw-la
a_o excellent_a and_o plain_a discourse_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o the_o godly_a may_v know_v and_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o all_o other_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a church_n as_o well_o for_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n as_o discipline_n etc._n etc._n write_a in_o french_a by_o m._n bartrand_n de_fw-fr loque_n a_o godly_a minister_n of_o dolphenine_a and_o faithful_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o m.t.w._n see_v and_o allow_v imprint_v at_o london_n for_o thomas_n man._n 1582._o ¶_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n contain_v in_o this_o present_a treatise_n chapter_n 1_o touch_v the_o diverse_a signification_n and_o takinge_n of_o this_o word_n church_n and_o how_o the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v pag._n 1._o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o catholic_a &_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v one_o although_o there_o be_v diverse_a particular_n thereof_o pag._n 7._o chap._n 3._o of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o of_o the_o true_a mark_n thereof_o pag._n 14_o chap._n 4._o whether_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o romish_a catholic_n pag._n 19_o chap._n 5._o of_o the_o call_n &_o succession_n of_o pastor_n pa._n 24._o chap._n 6._o that_o the_o church_n have_v always_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o end_n thereof_o but_o yet_o the_o church_n must_v not_o be_v regard_v or_o acknowledge_v for_o the_o great_a number_n sake_n pag._n 55._o chap._n 7._o that_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o saint_n peter_n neither_o any_o pope_n pag._n 68_o chap._n 8._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n and_o whether_o we_o do_v well_o to_o withdraw_v or_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o it_o pag._n 102._o chap._n 9_o touch_v the_o degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n where_o also_o speech_n be_v have_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o pope_n clergy_n and_o of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o true_a pastor_n pag._n 128._o chap._n 10._o whether_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o the_o church_n and_o how_o much_o man_n may_v attribute_v or_o give_v thereto_o pag._n 160._o chap._n 11._o of_o the_o sanctify_v or_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 184._o chap._n 12._o whether_o the_o church_n may_v err_v pag._n 197._o chap._n 13._o whether_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 213._o chap._n 14._o of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 234._o chap._n 15._o whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n and_o if_o she_o make_v some_o how_o far_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o obey_v she_o pag._n 25●_n chap._n 16._o concern_v the_o affliction_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 274._o ¶_o to_o the_o most_o noble_a lord_n my_o lord_n henry_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr tour_n viscount_n of_o turenne_n county_n of_o monfert_n baron_n of_o mongacon_n oriergues_n bonsolz_n faith_n seruissac_n croc_n etc._n etc._n captain_n of_o five_o hundred_o man_n at_o arm_n of_o the_o king_n army_n my_o lord_n 30._o lactan._n lib._n 4_o de_fw-la vera_fw-la sapient_a cap._n 30._o lactantius_n have_v very_o proper_o and_o fit_o call_v the_o church_n the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n the_o house_n and_o dwell_a place_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n adjoin_v withal_o that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o which_o enter_v not_o into_o this_o temple_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o go_v out_o thereof_o he_o be_v shut_v out_o from_o the_o hope_n of_o life_n and_o from_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o even_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o universal_a flood_n none_o can_v be_v save_v which_o be_v out_o of_o noah_n his_o ark_n 7.20.23_o gene._n 7.20.23_o so_o without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v neither_o hope_n nor_o faith_n nor_o grace_n nor_o salvation_n which_o thing_n also_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v and_o mean_v when_o be_v purpose_v to_o excommunicate_v some_o and_o to_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n 1.20_o 2._o cor._n 5_o 3.5_o 1._o tim._n 1.20_o he_o say_v he_o must_v deliver_v they_o unto_o satan_n for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n reign_v in_o the_o church_n so_o satan_n reign_v without_o the_o same_o and_o as_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n have_v jesus_n christ_n for_o their_o head_n be_v in_o very_o good_a state_n &_o bless_a so_o they_o which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n have_v the_o devil_n for_o their_o head_n can_v but_o be_v wicked_a and_o accurse_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v both_o in_o isaiah_n &_o in_o joel_n that_o in_o zion_n and_o in_o jerusalem_n there_o shall_v be_v salvation_n 2.32_o isaia_n 46.13_o joel._n 2.32_o there_o be_v mean_v by_o zion_n and_o jerusalem_n the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o also_o by_o the_o word_n heaven_n there_o be_v mean_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o apocalips_n when_o s._n john_n say_v i_o hear_v a_o great_a and_o loud_a voice_n 12.10_o reve._n 12.10_o say_v now_o be_v salvation_n in_o heaven_n on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o read_v that_o when_o god_n declare_v that_o he_o will_v utter_o root_v out_o some_o from_o the_o heavenly_a life_n he_o denounce_v against_o they_o and_o threaten_v 13.9_o ezech._n 13.9_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o counsel_n &_o assembly_n of_o his_o people_n neither_o write_v in_o the_o role_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o david_n very_o well_o know_v and_o feel_v this_o when_o sometime_o be_v in_o exile_n all_o grief_n and_o adversity_n be_v unto_o he_o tolerable_a and_o as_o a_o man_n will_v say_v easy_a to_o beat_v except_v this_o that_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o and_o want_v the_o solemn_a assembly_n wherein_o man_n make_v public_a declaration_n and_o protestation_n of_o god_n religion_n and_o service_n wherefore_o be_v wail_v his_o condition_n because_o he_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o visible_a church_n he_o be_v also_o shut_v out_o from_o access_n or_o come_n to_o the_o tabernacle_n by_o the_o cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n of_o his_o enemy_n he_o cry_v out_o earnest_o and_o say_v o_o lord_n of_o host_n how_o amiable_a be_v thy_o tabernacle_n 84.1.2.4.10_o psalm_n 84.1.2.4.10_o my_o soul_n long_v yea_o &_o faint_v for_o the_o court_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o my_o heart_n and_o my_o flesh_n leap_v for_o joy_n in_o the_o live_a god_n and_o a_o little_a after_o bless_a be_v they_o which_o dwell_v in_o thy_o house_n they_o will_v ever_o praise_v thou_o for_o a_o day_n in_o thy_o court_n be_v better_a than_o a_o thousand_o other_o wheis_n i_o have_v rather_o be_v a_o door_n keeper_n in_o the_o house_n of_o my_o god_n then_o to_o dwell_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o thereby_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o man_n which_o bestow_v their_o life_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v but_o a_o day_n long_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n &_o among_o faithful_a people_n be_v far_o more_o bless_v than_o they_o who_o live_v though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o long_o out_o of_o god_n house_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o out_o of_o who_o company_n their_o religion_n be_v banish_v to_o which_o purpose_n also_o belong_v that_o which_o the_o same_o prophet_n sing_v in_o a_o other_o psalm_n 27.4_o psalm_n 27.4_o one_o thing_n have_v i_o desire_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o i_o will_v require_v even_o that_o i_o may_v dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n to_o behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o visit_v his_o temple_n and_o again_o when_o he_o say_v 106.45_o psal_n 106.45_o remember_v or_o have_v mercy_n on_o i_o o_o lord_n with_o the_o favour_n and_o good_a will_n of_o the_o people_n and_o visit_v i_o with_o thy_o salvation_n that_o i_o may_v set_v the_o good_a thing_n of_o thy_o choose_a one_o and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o people_n and_o glory_n with_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n and_o occasion_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n commend_v &_o praise_v moses_n 11.24.25_o heb._n 11.24.25_o when_o he_o say_v that_o by_o faith_n he_o be_v come_v to_o age_n refuse_v to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o pharaoh_n his_o daughter_n choose_v rather_o to_o suffer_v adversity_n with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n then_o to_o enjoy_v the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n for_o a_o short_a season_n wherefore_o if_o we_o will_v that_o god_n shall_v govern_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n to_o make_v we_o enjoy_v and_o possess_v his_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a good_a thing_n
which_o he_o give_v not_o but_o unto_o his_o child_n alone_o the_o member_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n and_o by_o consequent_a if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v and_o make_v bless_v we_o ought_v to_o hold_v and_o keep_v ourselves_o firm_a sure_a and_o well_o stay_v in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o force_n of_o tyrant_n no_o violence_n of_o storm_n and_o tempest_n no_o persecution_n of_o enemy_n no_o promise_n no_o threaten_n nor_o to_o be_v short_a any_o thing_n else_o which_o may_v turn_v we_o away_o or_o cause_v we_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o it_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o see_v what_o controversy_n and_o disputation_n there_o be_v at_o this_o day_n amongst_o man_n touch_v the_o point_n or_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_o which_o lactantius_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o every_o company_n of_o heretic_n suppose_v that_o they_o be_v true_a christian_n 10_o lact._n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la sapien_fw-fr ca._n 10_o and_o their_o church_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o know_v that_o parmenianus_n the_o donatist_n say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o church_n but_o among_o his_o sort_n and_o company_n insomuch_o that_o sundry_a of_o this_o age_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o drop_v away_o and_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o feign_a name_n and_o visardlike_a title_n of_o the_o church_n abide_v harden_v in_o their_o superstition_n and_o blind_v in_o error_n make_v no_o account_n 20._o august_n ad_fw-la catecum_fw-la cap._n 20._o of_o saint_n augustine_n his_o advertisement_n and_o counsel_n who_o speak_v thus_o this_o catholic_a church_n be_v our_o true_a mother_n yea_o she_o be_v our_o faithful_a and_o chaste_a mother_n deck_v within_o with_o the_o dignity_n and_o worthiness_n of_o her_o husband_n and_o not_o colour_v or_o paint_v without_o with_o lie_v and_o falsehood_n and_o afterwards_o he_o add_v let_v we_o look_v well_o to_o ourselves_o that_o the_o strange_a and_o false_a name_n of_o the_o church_n turn_v we_o not_o away_o from_o this_o mother_n of_o we_o and_o that_o the_o outward_a show_n or_o borrow_v bare_a title_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v us._n there_o be_v some_o other_o who_o remain_v astonish_v as_o it_o be_v and_o doubtful_a not_o know_v to_o which_o part_n to_o turn_v neither_o on_o which_o side_n to_o set_v themselves_o in_o order_n see_v the_o romishe_a church_n arm_v with_o great_a force_n and_o authority_n maintain_v and_o uphold_v by_o great_a personage_n clothe_v with_o diverse_a ornament_n outward_a apparel_n and_o follow_v of_o the_o great_a number_n on_o the_o other_o side_n behold_v the_o reform_a church_n feeble_a and_o weak_a in_o outward_a show_n make_v and_o stand_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o small_a and_o base_a according_a to_o the_o world_n simple_a in_o decking_n and_o ceremony_n and_o follow_v of_o very_a few_o people_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v our_o principal_a light_n and_o chief_a guide_n give_v we_o a_o good_a remedy_n and_o aid_v in_o this_o difficulty_n show_v we_o that_o the_o true_a church_n aught_o to_o be_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a by_o her_o own_o right_a and_o true_a mark_n which_o be_v the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o true_a and_o right_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o the_o great_a number_n of_o people_n nor_o pomp_n not_o outward_a ceremony_n invent_v &_o devise_v by_o man_n themselves_o you_o my_o lord_n have_v sometime_o see_v what_o trouble_n and_o combat_n the_o very_a visard_n bare_a name_n and_o shine_a show_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n have_v bring_v to_o some_o man_n conscience_n and_o spirit_n and_o that_o not_o only_o amongst_o the_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a sort_n but_o even_o in_o the_o rank_n and_o order_n of_o those_o which_o make_v profession_n and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v other_o yea_o so_o far_o it_o have_v carry_v they_o that_o by_o reason_n there_o be_v nor_o in_o they_o a_o full_a resoluteness_n they_o know_v not_o of_o what_o company_n they_o shall_v be_v notwithstanding_o as_o touch_v yourself_o after_o that_o god_n have_v honour_v you_o with_o his_o knowledge_n and_o call_v you_o into_o his_o church_n that_o you_o may_v be_v comprehend_v within_o the_o sheepefolde_a of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n have_v almost_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o his_o gospel_n and_o cast_v away_o the_o beast_n mark_v whatsoever_o shake_v and_o stagger_v you_o perceive_v in_o diverse_a other_o you_o notwithstanding_o have_v always_o continue_v through_o god_n grace_n ground_v and_o settle_v yourself_o upon_o his_o assure_a and_o invincible_a word_n and_o in_o deed_n by_o what_o force_n and_o strength_n can_v the_o back_n flydinge_n of_o some_o &_o the_o sophistical_a disputation_n of_o other_o some_o astonishe_v your_o faith_n or_o beat_v down_o your_o constancy_n so_o well_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n how_o can_v these_o assault_n crack_v your_o courage_n or_o change_n and_o make_v cold_a your_o zeal_n so_o hot_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n certain_o this_o be_v a_o great_a matter_n that_o all_o the_o world_n have_v a_o eye_n upon_o you_o wonder_v at_o and_o love_v the_o great_a and_o singular_a affection_n which_o you_o bear_v to_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n true_a religion_n and_o service_n but_o the_o question_n be_v now_o to_o continue_v in_o well_o do_v and_o to_o proceed_v daily_o from_o good_a to_o better_v for_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o begin_v well_o except_o a_o man_n persevere_v and_o continue_v even_o to_o the_o end_n and_o we_o know_v what_o jesus_n christ_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o which_o put_v his_o hand_n to_o the_o plough_n and_o look_v back_o be_v not_o apt_a to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 2.5_o luke_n 9.62_o 2._o tim._n 2.5_o and_o saint_n paul_n if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o strive_v for_o a_o mastery_n he_o be_v not_o crown_v except_o he_o strive_v as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v there_o be_v some_o which_o say_v that_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o a_o man_n to_o have_v some_o testimony_n in_o his_o conscience_n that_o he_o belong_v to_o god_n albeit_o he_o make_v not_o any_o declaration_n or_o profession_n of_o his_o religion_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n here_o above_o mark_v and_o put_v down_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o we_o to_o gather_v what_o need_n we_o have_v to_o range_v and_o bring_v ourselves_o into_o the_o true_a church_n that_o we_o may_v therein_o live_v christianlie_a in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n see_v that_o any_o where_o else_o there_o be_v neither_o life_n nor_o light_n and_o also_o what_o assurance_n can_v they_o have_v of_o their_o salvation_n which_o live_v in_o this_o world_n as_o dog_n and_o swine_n follow_v the_o train_n and_o step_n of_o sardanapalus_n or_o of_o epicurus_n to_o eat_v and_o drink_v to_o laugh_v and_o rejoice_v to_o play_v and_o to_o give_v themselves_o to_o pleasure_n without_o think_v any_o whit_n at_o all_o of_o god_n or_o remember_v any_o religion_n wherefore_o my_o lord_n even_o as_o you_o have_v well_o and_o bless_o begin_v have_v have_v right_a knowledge_n to_o discern_v between_o the_o true_a and_o false_a church_n so_o it_o yet_o rest_v that_o you_o persevere_v and_o continue_v yea_o that_o yet_o you_o proceed_v and_o pass_v somewhat_o further_o to_o range_v and_o bring_v into_o order_n all_o your_o house_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v unto_o he_o a_o holy_a and_o chaste_a church_n in_o the_o midst_n whereof_o he_o may_v take_v pleasure_n to_o dwell_v that_o thereby_o he_o may_v bless_v you_o and_o make_v you_o to_o prosper_v you_o know_v with_o what_o ardency_n and_o zeal_n the_o prophet_n haggai_n reprove_v the_o jew_n of_o his_o time_n 1.4_o haggai_n 1.4_o late_o return_v out_o of_o babylon_n because_o they_o build_v many_o house_n for_o themselves_o and_o do_v diligent_o feel_v and_o carve_v they_o but_o they_o have_v no_o regard_n to_o build_v up_o the_o lord_n temple_n 2.3.22_o hag._n 2.3.22_o and_o we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o prophet_n direct_v not_o his_o speech_n only_o to_o the_o people_n and_o priest_n to_o move_v they_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n for_o the_o furtherance_n and_o set_v up_o of_o this_o building_n but_o also_o unto_o zerubbabel_n the_o governor_n of_o judah_n which_o serve_v well_o to_o declare_v that_o great_a lord_n and_o magistrate_n as_o well_o as_o minister_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n aught_o with_o all_o their_o might_n and_o power_n to_o employ_v themselves_o for_o the_o edification_n and_o advancement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 82.1_o rom._n 13.4_o psalm_n 82.1_o and_o thereupon_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o sainte_n paul_n call_v magistrate_n the_o minister_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o another_o place_n they_o be_v call_v even_o god_n to_o wit_n not_o
strengthen_v the_o faithful_a people_n conscience_n at_o this_o time_n in_o which_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o devil_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o our_o salvation_n be_v unchain_v and_o untie_v and_o that_o all_o the_o world_n be_v kindele_v with_o rage_n and_o set_v on_o fire_n with_o fury_n and_o conspire_v with_o he_o furious_o to_o rush_v upon_o the_o poor_a church_n set_v out_o and_o make_v a_o show_n against_o it_o of_o all_o that_o that_o cruelty_n can_v devise_v wherefore_o i_o show_v what_o be_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n &_o that_o she_o have_v always_o have_v such_o a_o virtue_n of_o patience_n and_o so_o great_a constancy_n and_o courage_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o tyrant_n have_v rather_o leave_v to_o persecute_v she_o then_o that_o she_o have_v fail_v and_o fall_v away_o by_o their_o torment_n insomuch_o that_o she_o have_v abide_v invincible_a and_o unconquered_a against_o the_o vehemency_n &_o violence_n of_o so_o many_o horrible_a combat_n as_o she_o be_v to_o sustain_v and_o endure_v and_o out_o of_o all_o they_o have_v bring_v a_o famous_a victory_n and_o most_o glorious_a crown_n in_o sum_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v always_o find_v place_n and_o passage_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o the_o fire_n sword_n torment_n fury_n outcry_n and_o horrible_a scatteringe_n abroad_o which_o be_v make_v against_o he_o as_o touch_v the_o fruit_n and_o profit_n which_o may_v come_v of_o this_o little_a labour_n i_o dare_v not_o affirm_v any_o thing_n thereof_o except_o it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o you_o my_o lord_n for_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o take_v as_o much_o pleasure_n to_o hear_v i_o discourse_v in_o write_v upon_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n as_o you_o common_o do_v when_o you_o hear_v i_o speak_v either_o particular_o to_o yourself_o or_o public_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o my_o charge_n and_o office_n and_o yet_o if_o you_o regard_v that_o which_o be_v i_o without_o doubt_n the_o fruit_n will_v be_v none_o but_o if_o you_o consider_v the_o argument_n and_o the_o large_a lay_v out_o of_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o this_o present_a treaty_n i_o assure_v myself_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v altogether_o unprofitable_a and_o that_o they_o which_o shall_v read_v the_o same_o will_v not_o repent_v themselves_o thereof_o furthermore_o i_o stay_v myself_o my_o lord_n upon_o your_o accustom_a goodness_n through_o which_o you_o disdain_v not_o or_o dislike_v any_o thing_n which_o come_v from_o your_o servant_n offer_v and_o dedicate_v unto_o you_o this_o little_a book_n most_o humble_o beseech_v you_o to_o accept_v it_o and_o to_o take_v it_o well_o that_o it_o come_v out_o into_o light_n under_o the_o inscription_n of_o your_o name_n and_o to_o receive_v it_o with_o such_o gentleness_n and_o courtesy_n as_o you_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o love_v virtue_n and_o favour_n christian_n religion_n and_o those_o that_o make_v profession_n thereof_o for_o i_o hope_v that_o if_o you_o receive_v and_o take_v it_o well_o that_o your_o name_n shall_v procure_v it_o more_o grace_n and_o like_n and_o shall_v get_v it_o more_o authority_n and_o purchase_v it_o more_o favour_n among_o all_o because_o that_o thing_n dedicate_v to_o great_a personage_n be_v better_o receive_v of_o the_o low_a sort_n although_o the_o thing_n of_o themselves_o be_v oftentimes_o very_o base_a and_o of_o small_a account_n and_o value_n and_o also_o as_o touch_v myself_o i_o be_v glad_o mind_v to_o declare_v and_o show_v by_o this_o slender_a mean_n a_o testimony_n of_o the_o obedience_n which_o i_o owe_v you_o and_o for_o the_o singular_a &_o earnest_a desire_n which_o i_o have_v to_o do_v you_o the_o most_o humble_a &_o acceptable_a service_n that_o i_o can_v in_o the_o lord_n who_o i_o beseech_v with_o all_o my_o heart_n to_o maintain_v you_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o lady_n the_o countess_n your_o sister_n in_o his_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o worthy_a keep_n and_o to_o preserve_v you_o both_o in_o a_o bless_a and_o long_a life_n augment_v and_o increase_v in_o you_o daily_o more_o and_o more_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n wherewith_o he_o have_v so_o plentiful_o deck_v &_o liberal_o enrich_v you_o from_o turenne_n this_o twenty-five_o of_o march_n 1577._o your_o most_o humble_a and_o most_o obedient_a servant_n bertrand_n de_fw-fr loque_fw-la a_o treaty_n of_o the_o church_n contain_v a_o true_a discourse_n in_o which_o a_o man_n may_v clear_o behold_v and_o see_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n form_n government_n and_o guide_v of_o the_o true_a church_n together_o with_o the_o infallible_a mark_n and_o token_n by_o which_o a_o man_n may_v know_v it_o and_o discern_v the_o same_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o all_o other_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a congregation_n cap._n i._n of_o the_o diverse_a signification_n and_o acception_n of_o this_o word_n church_n and_o how_o the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v man_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o every_o word_n which_o may_v be_v take_v in_o many_o sense_n and_o in_o diverse_a signification_n shall_v rather_o be_v distinguish_v then_o define_v for_o a_o man_n can_v not_o otherwise_o right_o declare_v the_o nature_n virtue_n and_o disposition_n of_o any_o thing_n unless_o he_o be_v first_o resolve_v of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n in_o which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v for_o as_o much_o therefore_o as_o this_o word_n church_n be_v of_o that_o sort_n be_v a_o greek_a word_n which_o signify_v a_o assembly_n or_o congregation_n &_o be_v take_v or_o derive_v from_o a_o word_n which_o in_o that_o tongue_n signify_v to_o call_v or_o to_o cause_n to_o come_v it_o be_v meet_v and_o necessary_a that_o before_o we_o give_v the_o definition_n thereof_o we_o declare_v after_o how_o many_o sort_n man_n use_v to_o take_v it_o 1_o now_o man_n sometime_o take_v it_o for_o a_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o wicked_a person_n 22.16_o psal_n 22.16_o as_o psalm_n 22.16_o the_o church_n or_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o wicked_a have_v enclose_v i_o and_o in_o psalm_n 26.5_o psal_n 26.5_o 26.5_o i_o have_v hate_v the_o church_n of_o the_o wicked_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o company_n for_o there_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n two_o word_n which_o the_o greek_n have_v turn_v synagogue_n and_o church_n which_o do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o a_o company_n troop_n or_o assembly_n 2_o sometime_o it_o be_v put_v for_o the_o assembly_n of_o citizen_n and_o burgess_n of_o a_o town_n in_o which_o meeting_n they_o entreat_v of_o the_o common_a and_o ordinary_a affair_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n and_o so_o do_v saint_n luke_n use_v it_o act_n 19.32.39_o 19.32.39_o act._n 19.32.39_o 3_o it_o be_v also_o take_v for_o the_o place_n whether_o the_o assembly_n be_v call_v together_o as_o judeth_n 6._o 6.16_o judeth_n 6.16_o verse_n 16._o and_o they_o call_v together_o all_o the_o ancient_n of_o the_o city_n and_o all_o their_o youth_n run_v together_o to_o the_o church_n or_o assembly_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o place_n of_o the_o congregation_n or_o assembly_n 4_o also_o for_o the_o senate_n or_o consistory_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v indeed_o the_o conductour_n and_o guider_n thereof_o as_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v tell_v the_o church_n matth._n mat._n 19.17_o chrysostom_n hom._n 62._o upon_o matth._n that_o be_v to_o say_v even_o as_o chrysostome_n also_o expound_v it_o the_o pastor_n leader_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n according_a where_o unto_o we_o see_v that_o saint_n john_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o consistory_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o which_o it_o be_v sometime_o determine_v to_o thrust_v out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n every_o one_o that_o will_v confess_v jesus_n christ_n 9.22_o joh._n 9.22_o he_o say_v general_o that_o the_o jew_n make_v this_o decree_n although_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o consistory_n only_o 5_o but_o in_o the_o question_n or_o matter_n of_o christian_a religion_n it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o company_n and_o assembly_n of_o faithful_a people_n which_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o true_a &_o pure_a religion_n of_o god_n of_o this_o church_n speak_v s._n paul_n when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n 20.28_o act._n 20.28_o whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o here_o we_o must_v observe_v certain_a distinction_n for_o even_o in_o this_o signification_n the_o church_n be_v common_o distinguish_v into_o three_o sort_n first_o it_o be_v call_v triumphant_a or_o else_o militant_a the_o church_n
their_o god_n the_o jew_n have_v the_o bark_n or_o husk_n of_o the_o law_n and_o their_o own_o thalmude_n the_o turk_n have_v the_o alcoran_n of_o their_o mahumet_n and_o the_o heretic_n also_o boast_v themselves_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o all_o these_o be_v false_a sign_n or_o mark_n but_o the_o true_a church_n have_v for_o her_o first_o and_o principal_a mark_n the_o word_n of_o god_n pure_o preach_v to_o the_o which_o the_o church_n consent_v &_o conform_v herself_o as_o we_o prove_v it_o plain_o by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n jesus_n christ_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n 10.27_o joh._n 10.27_o and_o i_o know_v they_o and_o they_o follow_v i_o and_o saint_n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n you_o be_v say_v he_o build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n 2.20_o eph._n 2.20_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o indeed_o if_o this_o be_v true_a as_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n as_o christ_n himself_o affirm_v search_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o for_o they_o be_v they_o which_o bear_v witness_v of_o i_o 5.39_o joh._n 5.39_o ought_v we_o not_o then_o by_o the_o same_o scripture_n to_o be_v guide_v and_o lead_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a and_o right_a church_n this_o matter_n the_o ancient_a father_n respect_v when_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o true_a church_n ought_v to_o show_v and_o declare_v itself_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o contra_fw-la pitilia_fw-la cap._n 2._o as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v there_o be_v great_a disputation_n between_o we_o and_o the_o donatist_n to_o know_v where_o the_o church_n be_v what_o be_v then_o that_o we_o have_v to_o do_v herein_o shall_v we_o search_v it_o out_o in_o our_o own_o word_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n thereof_o very_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o seek_v for_o it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o he_o that_o be_v truth_n and_o know_v very_o well_o his_o own_o body_n 2.19_o 2._o tim._n 2.19_o for_o the_o lord_n know_v they_o that_o be_v he_o and_o again_o i_o will_v not_o show_v or_o declare_v the_o church_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 166._o cont._n pitili_n cap._n 3._o aug._n epist_n 166._o also_o by_o the_o scripture_n say_v he_o we_o have_v learned_a christ_n by_o the_o scripture_n likewise_o we_o have_v learn_v to_o know_v the_o church_n we_o have_v these_o scripture_n common_a amongst_o we_o wherefore_o then_o do_v we_o not_o retain_v and_o hold_v in_o they_o both_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o chrysostome_n say_v 7._o supr_fw-la matth._n exposit_n 2._o hom._n 49._o cap._n 24._o lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr jaco._n cap._n 7._o he_o that_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n by_o what_o mean_a can_v he_o know_v it_o in_o such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n of_o outward_a show_n if_o it_o be_v not_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n saint_n ambrose_n say_v also_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n be_v there_o where_o god_n himself_o appear_v and_o speak_v to_o his_o servant_n by_o his_o own_o word_n the_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n 11._o cont._n faustum_n manich._n lib._n 9_o cap._n 11._o saint_n augustine_n have_v sometime_o say_v that_o man_n can_v not_o unite_v or_o knit_v themselves_o together_o in_o any_o religion_n whatsoever_o be_v it_o true_a or_o false_a but_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o some_o sacrament_n or_o visible_a sign_n so_o the_o gentile_n have_v their_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n the_o jew_n have_v circumcision_n and_o some_o other_o outward_a sign_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o the_o true_a church_n have_v for_o the_o second_o of_o her_o mark_n her_o own_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o head_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a supper_n and_o thereunto_o must_v be_v refer_v that_o which_o saint_n augustine_n say_v 1_o ad_fw-la inquisit_a januar._n cap._n 1_o the_o lord_n have_v unite_v or_o knit_v together_o the_o new_a people_n that_o be_v the_o people_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v few_o in_o number_n easy_a in_o observation_n and_o very_o great_a in_o signification_n to_o wit_n by_o baptism_n consecrate_v or_o administer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o by_o the_o communicate_v or_o partake_v of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n beside_o saint_n paul_n do_v in_o like_a sort_n right_o teach_v we_o this_o 12.13_o 1._o cor._n 12.13_o when_o he_o say_v first_o of_o baptism_n that_o we_o be_v all_o baptise_a by_o one_o spirit_n into_o one_o body_n and_o afterward_o of_o the_o supper_n we_o that_o be_v many_o 10.17_o 1._o cor._n 10.17_o be_v one_o bread_n and_o one_o body_n because_o we_o all_o be_v partaker_n of_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o bread_n mean_v thereby_o that_o these_o two_o sacrament_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n the_o two_o common_a sign_n of_o the_o church_n that_o by_o the_o same_o we_o be_v visible_o gather_v together_o into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v there_o be_v account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o his_o household_n servant_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n withal_o the_o faithful_a and_o by_o consequent_a draw_v take_v and_o separate_v from_o all_o other_o people_n &_o profane_a nation_n chap._n four_o whether_o these_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o romish_a catholik_o these_o than_o be_v the_o two_o certain_a &_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n by_o which_o man_n must_v examine_v all_o assembly_n that_o pretend_v the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n jest_n otherwise_o they_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v wherefore_o if_o a_o man_n will_v know_v whether_o the_o true_a church_n be_v among_o the_o romish_a catholic_n or_o no_o we_o need_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o any_o other_o proof_n or_o touchstone_n then_o this_o only_a but_o it_o shall_v behoove_v we_o to_o hold_v and_o to_o keep_v in_o memory_n one_o foundation_n or_o sure_a ground_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o two_o mark_n must_v always_o be_v retain_v and_o keep_v in_o their_o purity_n without_o be_v any_o manner_n of_o way_n falsify_v or_o corrupt_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o doctrine_n must_v be_v pure_a and_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sound_a and_o lawful_a for_o indeed_o in_o outward_a show_n they_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o these_o two_o mark_n be_v to_o be_v find_v amongst_o the_o romish_a catholic_n but_o when_o all_o shall_v be_v right_o and_o due_o examine_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o on_o their_o side_n for_o as_o concern_v the_o word_n it_o be_v not_o preach_v by_o they_o right_o or_o pure_o but_o as_o s._n hilary_n say_v they_o make_v a_o sense_n upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o take_v it_o not_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o make_v it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o leaden_a rule_n which_o man_n common_o call_v regula_n lesbian_n apply_v it_o to_o their_o own_o intentes_fw-la and_o purpose_n and_o not_o submit_v their_o own_o purpose_n to_o it_o touch_v this_o matter_n it_o be_v needful_a for_o we_o to_o know_v that_o all_o exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n must_v be_v refer_v to_o two_o principal_a head_n or_o end_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v conformable_a or_o agreeable_a to_o the_o analogy_n &_o proportion_n of_o faith_n for_o touch_v the_o first_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o that_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n 7.18_o john_n 7.18_o be_v true_a now_o without_o doubt_n when_o the_o romish_a catholic_n extol_v man_n free_a will_n &_o ascribe_v unto_o man_n some_o merit_n for_o his_o work_n they_o snatch_v and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n pull_v away_o from_o god_n some_o part_n of_o the_o glory_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o so_o by_o consequent_a when_o they_o serve_v themselves_o with_o certain_a piece_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o pretend_v they_o can_v not_o therein_o excuse_v themselves_o but_o that_o they_o corrupt_v and_o falsify_v the_o scripture_n declare_v themselves_o hereby_o right_a heretic_n indeed_o for_o as_o s._n jerome_n say_v who_o so_o ever_o expound_v the_o scripture_n otherwise_o then_o the_o sense_n &_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n require_v galat._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la galat._n although_o he_o have_v not_o withdraw_v or_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o
bishop_n of_o ourselves_o but_o for_o they_o 11._o august_n count_n crescon_n grammat_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o to_o who_o we_o administer_v the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n now_o here_o i_o speak_v unto_o all_o cardinal_n bishope_n abbot_n prior_n curate_n and_o other_o priest_n together_o with_o their_o pope_n himself_o and_o will_v they_o to_o examine_v and_o judge_v themselves_o in_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o see_v whether_o they_o can_v with_o good_a right_a boast_n themselves_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o in_o faithful_a execution_n of_o their_o charge_n and_o office_n and_o to_o mark_v how_o they_o observe_v those_o canon_n which_o the_o attribute_n to_o the_o apostle_n whereof_o the_o fifty_o eight_o canon_n 58._o can._n apost_n can_v 58._o excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n and_o elder_n who_o have_v not_o any_o care_n either_o of_o their_o clergy_n or_o of_o the_o people_n the_o charge_n of_o who_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o do_v not_o teach_v they_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a religion_n which_o canon_n also_o ordein_v that_o if_o such_o continue_v in_o their_o negligence_n &_o carelessness_n they_o shall_v be_v depose_v there_o rest_v the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o church_n or_o place_n touch_v which_o first_o we_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n do_v not_o always_o aid_v themselves_o with_o this_o argument_n when_o the_o be_v to_o fight_v with_o heretic_n for_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o such_o as_o do_v receive_v and_o allow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o well_o as_o themselves_o the_o dispute_n and_o matter_n in_o controversy_n between_o they_o be_v only_o in_o the_o true_a interpretation_n thereof_o they_o content_v themselves_o to_o allege_v scripture_n expound_v place_n one_o by_o a_o other_o even_o as_o saint_n augustine_n say_v august_n august_n that_o that_o which_o be_v dark_a in_o one_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a in_o a_o other_o but_o when_o they_o be_v to_o reason_n against_o they_o that_o will_v add_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o manichaeus_n who_o will_v that_o man_n shall_v receive_v his_o epistle_n which_o he_o call_v fundamental_a even_o as_o it_o be_v the_o gospel_n itself_o there_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o serve_v their_o turn_n with_o the_o argument_n of_o succession_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o use_v it_o it_o be_v not_o either_o their_o only_a or_o their_o principal_a defence_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o show_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o they_o be_v in_o error_n and_o afterward_o add_v as_o a_o good_a bulwark_n or_o mean_a of_o resistance_n the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n witness_v by_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n also_o they_o help_v themselves_o therewith_o as_o with_o a_o very_a likely_a or_o probable_a argument_n and_o good_a enough_o in_o the_o defence_n of_o truth_n against_o error_n but_o yet_o not_o so_o as_o though_o it_o have_v a_o like_a force_n and_o strength_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o error_n against_o truth_n itself_o last_o when_o they_o demand_v of_o heretic_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v from_o who_o they_o descend_v who_o be_v their_o predecessoure_n etc._n etc._n they_o mean_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o their_o vocation_n or_o calling_n which_o they_o never_o call_v into_o doubt_n or_o question_n for_o the_o great_a number_n of_o they_o be_v bishop_n as_o nestorius_n be_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n samosatenus_fw-la of_o antioch_n all_o lawful_o call_v and_o have_v right_a and_o authority_n to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o mean_v to_o speak_v of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v new_a and_o not_o hear_v of_o before_o wherefore_o when_o they_o allege_v or_o lay_v succession_n for_o themselves_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o mean_v the_o occupy_v of_o the_o chair_n or_o enjoy_n of_o the_o place_n as_o the_o continuance_n conformity_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o doctrine_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n our_o adversary_n do_v not_o demand_v of_o we_o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o our_o doctrine_n but_o inquire_v of_o we_o touch_v our_o vocation_n and_o calling_n and_o be_v content_v with_o this_o to_o declare_v that_o their_o bishop_n be_v descend_v from_o all_o antiquity_n but_o not_o their_o doctrine_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o deceive_v themselves_o for_o neither_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n neither_o long_a time_n after_o such_o bishop_n as_o be_v now_o in_o the_o popedom_n have_v any_o place_n so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v safe_o say_v they_o be_v not_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n nor_o from_o their_o true_a successor_n to_o conclude_v we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v very_o certain_a that_o such_o a_o succession_n of_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o importance_n because_o the_o pastor_n at_o that_o time_n have_v not_o only_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o pastor_n but_o do_v withal_o faithful_o exercise_v the_o charge_n and_o office_n thereof_o but_o what_o be_v at_o this_o day_n the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v the_o most_o sound_a judge_v thereof_o be_v the_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n touch_v succession_n to_o some_o inheritance_n to_o have_v the_o possession_n and_o enjoy_n thereof_o no_o but_o rather_o for_o man_n to_o set_v their_o hand_n to_o work_v and_o labour_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v do_v to_o watch_v diligent_o over_o christ_n flock_n and_o to_o minister_v unto_o it_o the_o food_n which_o be_v necessary_a and_o meet_a for_o it_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v if_o any_o man_n desire_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n he_o desire_v a_o good_a or_o excellent_a work_n and_o again_o 3.1_o 1._o tim._n 3.1_o speak_v unto_o bishop_n take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o say_v he_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n 30.39_o act._n 30.39_o whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o bishop_n or_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o s._n peter_n the_o elder_n which_o be_v among_o you_o i_o beseech_v which_o be_o also_o a_o elder_a with_o they_o 5.12_o 1._o pet._n 5.12_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o you_o care_v for_o it_o not_o by_o constraint_n etc._n etc._n the_o succession_n then_o of_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n be_v nothing_o without_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o duty_n for_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v dead_a as_o say_v s._n cyprian_n when_o no_o sound_n go_v forth_o of_o his_o mouth_n 24._o cyprian_a lib._n 1_o epl_n 4._o greg._n epl_a 24._o if_o he_o be_v dead_a as_o say_v s._n gregory_n when_o he_o preach_v not_o by_o what_o title_n may_v a_o man_n say_v that_o the_o romish_a byshoppe_n and_o priest_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o have_v the_o possession_n of_o their_o chair_n or_o place_n if_o they_o be_v dead_a or_o altogether_o dumb_a or_o else_o not_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o doctrine_n &_o truth_n for_o let_v we_o a_o little_a behold_v how_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v join_v and_o knit_v the_o succession_n of_o person_n or_o place_n with_o the_o succession_n of_o doctrine_n and_o office_n 33.34_o irenae_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 33.34_o irenaeus_n say_v we_o be_v command_v to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o elder_n which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o have_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n have_v receive_v according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o the_o father_n certain_a grace_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n tertullian_n say_v also_o if_o some_o heretic_n dare_v be_v so_o bold_a to_o intermingle_v themselves_o with_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n thereby_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o they_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o because_o they_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o their_o day_n we_o may_v say_v let_v they_o show_v then_o the_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o unfold_v or_o discover_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o such_o sort_n run_v and_o flow_v by_o continual_a order_n from_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o first_o bishop_n have_v have_v some_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o his_o author_n and_o predecessor_n or_o some_o one_o of_o they_o who_o be_v the_o follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o also_o do_v notwithstanding_o persevere_v and_o continue_v with_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o church_n say_v he_o which_o be_v plant_v after_o the_o apostle_n time_n &_o those_o which_o be_v yet_o plant_v at_o this_o day_n although_o that_o they_o bring_v not_o any_o author_n for_o they_o from_o amongst_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolical_a person_n yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v find_v consent_v in_o the_o same_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o to_o
be_v hold_v take_v or_o acknowledge_v for_o any_o other_o then_o apostolical_a pro_fw-la consanguinitate_fw-la dictrinae_fw-la say_v he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o the_o nighnesse_n in_o blood_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o maintain_v keep_v and_o hold_v with_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o ordain_v and_o set_v up_o s._n augustine_n write_v to_o one_o generosus_fw-la 156._o aug._n open_fw-mi 156._o do_v so_o extol_v the_o succession_n and_o continual_a order_n of_o pastor_n that_o he_o name_v thirty_o bishop_n of_o rome_n put_v anastasius_n for_o the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o but_o he_o add_v even_o present_o or_o immediate_o after_o in_o all_o this_o rank_n or_o band_n there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v one_o donatist_n and_o against_o the_o manichee_n he_o write_v thus_o 4._o epist_n fundament_n cap._n 4._o there_o be_v very_o many_o thing_n which_o hold_v and_o keep_v i_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n the_o authority_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v through_o hope_n augment_v by_o charity_n and_o confirm_v by_o antiquity_n moreover_o the_o succession_n of_o pastor_n even_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o saint_n peter_n to_o he_o that_o be_v at_o this_o day_n present_a and_o a_o little_a after_o but_o on_o your_o part_n say_v he_o to_o the_o manichee_n you_o allege_v or_o bring_v forth_o no_o such_o thing_n but_o only_o you_o retain_v or_o stand_v to_o a_o promise_n of_o truth_n which_o indeed_o if_o it_o do_v declare_v itself_o so_o evident_o that_o a_o man_n can_v not_o any_o more_o doubt_n thereof_o i_o confess_v &_o consent_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o antiquity_n succession_n and_o all_o other_o thing_n s_o hierome_n habetur_fw-la hierom._n epi._n 1._o ad_fw-la heliod_n &_o habetur_fw-la they_o be_v not_o say_v he_o the_o son_n and_o child_n of_o holy_a man_n that_o hold_v and_o possess_v the_o place_n of_o holy_a man_n but_o they_o which_o follow_v their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v their_o work_v can._n distinct._n 40._o can._n and_o chrysostome_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n there_o be_v say_v he_o many_o elder_n and_o few_o elder_n many_o in_o name_n and_o few_o in_o deed_n behold_v my_o brethren_n how_o you_o be_v place_v and_o set_v in_o the_o chair_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n that_o make_v a_o elder_a but_o the_o elder_a the_o chair_n or_o place_n behold_v after_o what_o manner_n and_o sort_n the_o ancient_a writer_n have_v speak_v but_o will_v we_o know_v in_o one_o word_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n of_o what_o value_n be_v the_o most_o common_a and_o old_a succession_n that_o a_o man_n can_v suppose_v if_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n be_v want_v s._n paul_n teach_v it_o we_o 1.8_o gal._n 1.8_o write_v to_o the_o galathian_o when_o he_o say_v if_o we_o ourselves_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o then_o that_o which_o we_o have_v preach_v unto_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v moreover_o i_o will_v glad_o demand_v of_o the_o romish_a catholic_n for_o what_o cause_n they_o hold_v not_o the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n for_o true_a church_n they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v because_o that_o succession_n be_v not_o on_o their_o side_n for_o they_o want_v not_o that_o but_o it_o be_v on_o their_o side_n even_o as_o old_a and_o ancient_a at_o the_o least_o as_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n wherefore_o they_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n receive_v amongst_o they_o to_o wit_n because_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o head_n because_o they_o deny_v purgatory_n because_o their_o minister_n be_v marry_v because_o they_o celebrate_v and_o minister_v the_o holy_a supper_n with_o leaven_a bread_n because_o they_o give_v both_o kind_n to_o the_o people_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n now_o if_o as_o touch_v the_o east_n church_n the_o papist_n judge_v of_o the_o church_n not_o by_o succession_n but_o by_o doctrine_n wherefore_o do_v they_o when_o they_o dispute_v with_o we_o stay_v themselves_o rather_o upon_o succession_n then_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n see_v that_o the_o question_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o be_v to_o examine_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n secondary_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o succession_n we_o say_v that_o if_o we_o shall_v enter_v into_o the_o sift_v of_o the_o succession_n of_o pope_n and_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o shall_v easy_o find_v that_o if_o man_n will_v theredy_o judge_v of_o their_o vocation_n or_o calling_n it_o shall_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n very_o much_o or_o stand_v they_o in_o any_o great_a stead_n for_o this_o we_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v that_o they_o have_v oftentimes_o succeed_v tyrant_n schismatics_n excommunicate_a person_n and_o bishop_n or_o pope_n not_o lawful_o call_v for_o what_o be_v gregory_n the_o seven_o who_o be_v name_v before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o pope_n doom_n hildebrand_n vrspergensis_n vrspergensis_n vrspergensis_n witness_v that_o he_o usurp_v the_o papal_a seat_n through_o tyranny_n and_o not_o by_o a_o lawful_a vocation_n and_o the_o council_n hold_v at_o worm_n wormat_n council_n wormat_n in_o the_o year_n 1080._o say_v also_o of_o the_o say_v hildebrand_n that_o he_o be_v not_o choose_v by_o god_n but_o that_o he_o do_v without_o shame_n thrust_v in_o himself_o thither_o by_o deceit_n and_o money_n and_o that_o he_o overthrewe_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n that_o he_o be_v a_o offensive_a person_n a_o mover_n of_o debate_n and_o a_o observer_n of_o divination_n &_o dream_n yea_o a_o manifest_a necromancer_n or_o conjurer_n what_o be_v the_o woman_n pope_n joan_n about_o the_o year_n 854_o platina_n platina_n platina_n in_o her_o life_n say_v that_o she_o be_v a_o english_a woman_n who_o in_o her_o youth_n follow_v and_o accompany_v a_o young_a scholar_n in_o study_n and_o profit_v so_o well_o therein_o that_o at_o rome_n she_o be_v esteem_v amongst_o the_o most_o skilful_a and_o learned_a for_o which_o cause_n she_o be_v exalt_v to_o be_v pope_n they_o suppose_v she_o have_v be_v a_o man_n but_o she_o be_v find_v great_a with_o child_n and_o at_o the_o last_o deliver_v in_o a_o open_a street_n and_o as_o they_o be_v go_v in_o solemn_a procession_n upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o those_o that_o carry_v she_o where_o also_o she_o die_v what_o be_v benedict_n the_o nine_o the_o story_n writer_n declare_v that_o after_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o many_o crime_n by_o the_o roman_n he_o be_v drive_v away_o and_o in_o his_o place_n be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o sabina_n call_v silvester_n the_o third_o who_o likewise_o be_v depose_v and_o put_v down_o because_o he_o be_v a_o idiot_n ignorant_a and_o unprofitable_a and_o the_o say_a benedicte_n recover_v the_o seat_n again_o from_o whence_o through_o covetousness_n he_o put_v himself_o down_o and_o ordain_v in_o his_o place_n john_n the_o archdeacon_n of_o saint_n john_n port_n latin_a who_o be_v name_v gregory_n the_o sixth_o to_o who_o he_o sell_v the_o popeship_n for_o very_a much_o money_n pay_v downright_o platina_n johannes_n maior_n mare_fw-la historiarum_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la platina_n as_o witness_v johannes_n maior_n the_o sea_n of_o history_n nauclerus_fw-la platina_n and_o the_o same_o gregory_n be_v pope_n be_v judge_v as_o well_o by_o the_o clergy_n as_o by_o the_o people_n to_o be_v a_o murderer_n and_o a_o symoniakal_a person_n what_o be_v silvester_n the_o second_o platina_n say_v that_o be_v a_o friar_n he_o give_v himself_o to_o the_o devil_n upon_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v aid_v &_o help_v he_o to_o obtain_v that_o which_o he_o desire_v &_o so_o by_o that_o mean_v he_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n what_o be_v eugenius_n the_o four_o he_o by_o the_o definitive_a sentence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n be_v condemn_v for_o a_o schismatic_n rebel_n and_o stubborn_a person_n and_o so_o depose_v and_o one_o aimus_n duke_n of_o savoie_n substitute_v in_o his_o place_n in_o the_o year_n 1439._o the_o 16._o of_o novemb._n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v support_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o favour_n of_o certain_a prince_n abode_n in_o the_o possession_n of_o his_o popedom_n and_o aimus_n his_o election_n pass_v into_o smoke_n and_o be_v of_o no_o force_n or_o value_n but_o without_o pass_v to_o any_o other_o example_n for_o this_o can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o in_o long_a time_n may_v we_o now_o affirm_v first_o that_o in_o all_o the_o time_n of_o these_o pope_n there_o have_v not_o be_v some_o interruption_n or_o breach_n of_o personal_a succession_n in_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n very_o we_o must_v confess_v it_o unless_o a_o man_n will_v say_v that_o heretic_n and_o notorious_a schismatics_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n
second_o that_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n which_o have_v succeed_v these_o reverend_a pope_n and_o other_o which_o be_v create_v and_o establish_v by_o they_o have_v have_v a_o good_a and_o lawful_a succession_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o vocation_n or_o calling_n whereupon_o the_o succession_n itself_o depend_v we_o affirm_v that_o our_o call_n be_v without_o comparison_n more_o certain_a &_o more_o lawful_a then_o be_v that_o of_o the_o bishop_n &_o priest_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o the_o better_a proof_n whereof_o let_v we_o mark_v what_o thing_n be_v requisite_a to_o a_o right_n and_o lawful_a call_n first_o right_a and_o authority_n to_o choose_v appertain_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o that_o not_o to_o one_o alone_a but_o to_o diverse_a lawful_o assemble_v at_o which_o election_n notwithstanding_o one_o ought_v to_o bear_v rule_n to_o guide_v and_o govern_v the_o action_n and_o to_o avoid_v all_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n and_o so_o must_v these_o place_n 1._o 5._o 1._o tim_n 5.22_o titus_n 1._o 5._o timot._fw-la 5.22_o and_z titus_n 1.5_o of_o necessity_n be_v understand_v seconde_o the_o election_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v without_o the_o plain_a and_o express_v consent_n of_o the_o people_n 23_o act_n 14._o 23_o as_o saint_n luke_n show_v the_o same_o by_o example_n act_n 14.23_o and_o as_o heretofore_o the_o church_n have_v ordain_v it_o even_o from_o leo_n his_o time_n 3._o leo._n epist_n 87_o &_o 90._o nicol._n dist_n 23._o can._n in_o nomine_fw-la cypri_n lib._n 3._o epist_n 3._o yea_o nicolas_n the_o second_o have_v write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o manner_n and_o fashion_n which_o be_v meet_v necessary_a and_o needful_a to_o keep_v in_o the_o election_n and_o choice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yea_o saint_n cyprian_n write_v to_o anthony_n rehearse_v that_o cornelius_n be_v after_o such_o sort_n and_o manner_n ordain_v bishop_n of_o rome_n permittendum_fw-la council_n laodic_n can._n 13._o dist_n 63._o can_n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr permittendum_fw-la for_o as_o concern_v that_o which_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o loadicea_n ordain_v that_o the_o election_n and_o choice_n of_o the_o pastor_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n that_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o people_n alone_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o election_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v confuse_o &_o without_o good_a order_n three_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v choose_v shall_v be_v well_o and_o due_o examine_v touch_v both_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o s._n paul_n have_v give_v therefore_o etc._n 1._o tim._n 3.1_o 2_o tit._n 1.5.6.7_o etc._n etc._n write_v to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n for_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o very_o good_a life_n and_o holy_a conversation_n so_o that_o the_o very_a stranger_n themselves_o &_o such_o as_o be_v without_o may_v not_o just_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o reproach_n or_o upbraid_v himself_o wtal_a also_o he_o must_v not_o be_v a_o young_a scholar_n but_o able_a &_o sufficient_a in_o doctrine_n and_o knowledge_n to_o teach_v such_o as_o be_v apt_a to_o learn_v &_o to_o convince_v yea_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v speak_v against_o the_o truth_n hereunto_o accord_v that_o which_o cyprian_n say_v 4_o cyp._n li._n 1._o ep_v 4_o we_o must_v faithful_o keep_v say_v he_o &_o diligent_o hold_v that_o which_o have_v be_v leave_v unto_o we_o by_o divine_a &_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o we_o may_v keep_v it_o also_o among_o ourselves_o yea_o and_o that_o in_o a_o manner_n throughout_o all_o province_n touch_v the_o vocation_n &_o call_v of_o bishop_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n near_o unto_o the_o place_n where_o the_o election_n be_v to_o be_v make_v do_v meet_v together_o &_o that_o they_o choose_v the_o bishop_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n which_o do_v full_o know_v the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o every_o one_o and_o that_o also_o agree_v hereunto_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o saint_n augustine_n in_o a_o certain_a dialogue_n between_o he_o and_o orosius_n wherein_o orosius_n demand_v 65._o q._n qrosii_n dial._n quast_n 65._o how_o may_v we_o know_v they_o which_o be_v send_v from_o god_n and_o saint_n augustine_n answer_v know_v that_o he_o be_v send_v from_o god_n which_o have_v not_o be_v choose_v by_o commendation_n or_o flattery_n of_o some_o small_a number_n of_o man_n and_o desire_v not_o to_o bear_v rule_n and_o give_v not_o any_o money_n to_o achieve_v or_o get_v the_o bishopplike_a dignity_n and_o honour_n but_o which_o be_v praise_v and_o commend_v by_o his_o holy_a life_n and_o good_a manner_n and_o also_o by_o the_o work_n or_o deed_n belong_v to_o a_o pastor_n and_o by_o the_o approbation_n and_o allowance_n of_o all_o the_o people_n we_o read_v also_o that_o it_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n that_o none_o shall_v be_v choose_v bishop_n 12._o council_n laodic_n can._n 12._o but_o they_o which_o have_v a_o long_a time_n be_v know_v to_o be_v of_o a_o good_a life_n &_o of_o holy_a conversation_n and_o who_o have_v also_o be_v well_o prove_v and_o try_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o good_a work_n and_o in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o paris_n 8._o council_n parisi_n can._n 8._o it_o be_v decree_v that_o no_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o citizen_n of_o the_o city_n but_o only_o he_o which_o shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o full_a will_n and_o consent_v of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o not_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o any_o prince_n nor_o by_o any_o other_o condition_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n he_o that_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o ordain_v and_o that_o shall_v come_v to_o this_o honour_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n let_v he_o be_v drive_v out_o and_o depose_v by_o all_o the_o rest_n 10._o conc._n quin._n tum_fw-la anicl_n can._n 10._o in_o the_o five_o council_n of_o orleans_n let_v not_o any_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n neither_o by_o buy_v purchase_v or_o reward_n but_o let_v the_o election_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o king_n will_v the_o clergy_n the_o people_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n there_o be_v almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o like_a canon_n in_o the_o counsel_n which_o if_o we_o will_v put_v down_o here_o we_o shall_v be_v overtedious_a &_o long_a now_o after_o right_a examination_n &_o lawful_a election_n or_o choice_n which_o be_v two_o very_a essential_a point_n and_o command_v by_o god_n law_n with_o which_o none_o in_o the_o world_n may_v dispense_v there_o come_v in_o the_o three_o place_n the_o imposition_n or_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n which_o be_v a_o ceremony_n by_o which_o the_o minister_n that_o be_v lawful_o choose_v be_v offer_v and_o dedicate_v as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n but_o let_v we_o now_o examine_v the_o romishe_a priest_n vocation_n first_o i_o ask_v whether_o the_o election_n which_o be_v make_v amongst_o they_o be_v defer_v and_o put_v over_o to_o the_o pastor_n and_o the_o church_n yea_o or_o no_o every_o man_n see_v what_o place_n and_o authority_n they_o give_v to_o their_o resignation_n as_o they_o call_v they_o to_o their_o permutation_n collation_n presentation_n donation_n etc._n etc._n and_o also_o how_o the_o magistrate_n and_o great_a man_n give_v bishopprickes_n abbotshippe_n personage_n vicarage_n and_o other_o benefice_n as_o it_o please_v themselves_o if_o the_o pastoure_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o right_o they_o that_o usurp_v the_o place_n of_o true_a pastoure_n indeed_o meddle_v in_o the_o election_n than_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o pope_n alone_o to_o choose_v the_o cardinal_n the_o bishop_n and_o archishop_n and_o to_o give_v the_o great_a and_o the_o fat_a benefice_n and_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n to_o choose_v the_o simple_a or_o single_a priest_n and_o to_o bestow_v or_o give_v the_o other_o inferior_a and_o less_o benefice_n and_o where_o be_v then_o the_o holy_a consent_n and_o agreement_n amongst_o the_o pastor_n which_o be_v of_o necessity_n require_v in_o the_o election_n secondarilie_o be_v the_o people_n call_v to_o it_o or_o be_v the_o people_n advertise_v or_o forewarn_v to_o bring_v thither_o and_o give_v their_o advice_n and_o consent_v thereto_o every_o one_o know_v that_o this_o be_v not_o perform_v three_o as_o concern_v they_o who_o they_o choose_v what_o serious_a or_o earnest_a examination_n make_v they_o either_o of_o their_o manner_n or_o of_o their_o doctrine_n sometime_o they_o choose_v infant_n and_o child_n at_o no_o hand_n fit_a or_o meet_v to_o exercise_v the_o least_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v sometime_o they_o choose_v man_n altogether_o ignorant_a
two_o witness_n and_o they_o shall_v prophesy_v a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o threescore_o day_n in_o which_o place_n s._n john_n foretell_v the_o general_a corruption_n of_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o last_o time_n yet_o so_o that_o withal_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understande_v that_o god_n will_v not_o suffer_v his_o service_n to_o continue_v so_o corrupt_v and_o bastardly_a but_o that_o he_o will_v reform_v it_o and_o bring_v it_o to_o her_o former_a perfection_n and_o soundness_n and_o that_o for_o this_o purpose_n he_o will_v raise_v and_o stir_v up_o witness_n of_o his_o own_o to_o prophesy_v and_o speak_v against_o so_o grievous_a a_o corruption_n and_o how_o shall_v this_o be_v do_v by_o use_v a_o extraordinary_a manner_n 9.49_o luk._n 9.49_o we_o may_v also_o very_a well_o apply_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o example_n of_o he_o who_o cast_v out_o devil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v hinder_v he_o because_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v jesus_n christ_n as_o they_o do_v but_o jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o they_o take_v heed_n that_o you_o forbid_v he_o not_o or_o hinder_v he_o for_o faith_n he_o he_o that_o be_v not_o against_o we_o be_v with_o us._n it_o be_v very_o true_a in_o deed_n that_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a vocation_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v light_o approve_v but_o it_o be_v also_o as_o true_a that_o it_o ●ught_v not_o as_o light_o to_o be_v condemn_v but_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a and_o manifest_a testimony_n 8.5_o act._n 6.5_o &_o 8.5_o of_o this_o extraordinary_a vocation_n in_o philip._n for_o he_o be_v only_o ordain_v a_o deacon_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v afterwards_o extraordinary_o call_v by_o god_n to_o preach_v jesus_n christ_n beside_o the_o first_o restorer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o our_o age_n or_o time_n who_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v be_v not_o to_o be_v reprove_v or_o blame_v for_o rashness_n for_o as_o in_o a_o city_n besiege_v by_o the_o enemy_n or_o assault_v with_o fire_n when_o they_o which_o be_v ordinary_o call_v for_o the_o safeguard_n and_o defence_n thereof_o and_o to_o give_v order_n in_o the_o danger_n of_o fire_n shall_v be_v themselves_o the_o first_o enemy_n and_o putter_n to_o of_o fire_n if_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o certain_a citizen_n have_v other_o charge_n or_o office_n in_o the_o city_n or_o else_o if_o they_o be_v but_o private_a and_o particular_a person_n will_v come_v and_o set_v up_o themselves_o and_o employ_v themselves_o in_o run_v to_o the_o breach_n and_o fire_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v preserve_v the_o city_n so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o they_o deserve_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v reprehend_v as_o traitor_n and_o unfaithful_a person_n that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n for_o a_o fact_n so_o courteous_a &_o gentle_a yea_o so_o profitable_a to_o the_o country_n they_o be_v great_o to_o be_v praise_v as_o very_o good_a citizen_n and_o true_a friend_n and_o preserver_n of_o the_o country_n so_o when_o the_o ordinary_a savegarde_n or_o keeper_n of_o god_n own_o house_n have_v declare_v themselves_o to_o be_v enemy_n thereof_o and_o putter_n too_o of_o fire_n to_o overthrow_v and_o mar_v all_o they_o that_o be_v afterwards_o advance_v and_o set_v forewarde_n themselves_o to_o resist_v they_o and_o to_o maintain_v the_o right_n and_o estate_n of_o the_o say_a house_n yea_o although_o they_o have_v have_v no_o manner_n of_o ordinary_a vocation_n but_o in_o their_o own_o conscience_n have_v only_o feel_v themselves_o extraordinarilye_o call_v for_o to_o execute_v such_o a_o office_n or_o charge_n so_o far_o of_o be_v it_o that_o either_o they_o may_v or_o aught_o to_o be_v blame_v that_o contrariwise_o they_o deserve_v honour_n and_o great_a praise_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v here_o to_o be_v note_v that_o albeit_o all_o be_v not_o enjoin_v or_o command_v to_o preach_v as_o well_o as_o all_o be_v command_v to_o oppose_v or_o set_v themselves_o against_o false_a prophet_n yet_o by_o consequent_a it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o if_o any_o do_v advance_v or_o set_v forward_o themselves_o to_o oppose_v or_o set_v themselves_o against_o false_a prophet_n they_o have_v do_v nothing_o against_o their_o vocation_n or_o call_n add_v also_o that_o even_o those_o which_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v extraordinary_o call_v have_v faithful_o acquit_v and_o behave_v themselves_o in_o their_o charge_n in_o preach_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v receive_v and_o allow_v of_o the_o people_n that_o vocation_n of_o they_o which_o before_o be_v extraordinary_a have_v cease_v yea_o must_v cease_v and_o afterward_o be_v become_v ordinary_a and_o as_o concern_v miracle_n we_o will_v short_o answer_v thereto_o let_v the_o romishe_a catholic_n show_v what_o miracle_n isaiah_n amos_n obadiah_n nahum_n zechariah_n and_o many_o other_o prophet_n do_v who_o god_n do_v extraordinary_o stir_v up_o where_o they_o which_o have_v the_o order_n and_o government_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n abuse_v the_o same_o next_o let_v they_o consider_v 12.39_o mat._n 12.39_o that_o it_o appertain_v to_o a_o evil_a &_o adulterous_a generation_n to_o demand_v and_o seek_v sign_n as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v three_o that_o miracle_n may_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v for_o we_o read_v that_o false_a prophet_n seducer_n 24.24_o deut._n 13.1_o etc._n etc._n mat._n 24.24_o and_o deceiver_n have_v sometime_o do_v they_o thereby_o to_o deceive_v man_n and_o to_o make_v approve_v their_o false_a doctrine_n 2.9_o 2._o thes_n 2.9_o and_o to_o increase_v and_o strengthen_v their_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v not_o by_o miracle_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o vocation_n and_o doctrine_n but_o rather_o on_o the_o other_o side_n by_o the_o vocation_n and_o doctrine_n we_o ought_v to_o judge_v of_o miracle_n and_o sign_n the_o other_o thing_n which_o we_o answer_v touch_v the_o vocation_n and_o call_n of_o our_o first_o minister_n be_v that_o we_o may_v very_o well_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n if_o we_o will_v allege_v that_o those_o minister_n themselves_o for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v in_o respect_n of_o themselves_o a_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v in_o deed_n call_v in_o their_o time_n by_o the_o pope_n and_o by_o he_o establish_v and_o set_v in_o their_o charge_n and_o therefore_o by_o consequent_a have_v authority_n and_o right_n to_o go_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n as_o luther_n zwinglius_fw-la oecolampadius_n bucer_n and_o before_o they_o wickliff_n and_o john_n hus._n also_o that_o in_o england_n sweden_n and_o denmark_n the_o right_a and_o lawful_a succession_n of_o the_o chair_n or_o place_n be_v on_o our_o side_n for_o there_o the_o ordinary_a bishop_n have_v receive_v the_o gospel_n and_o preach_v it_o so_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o dispute_v of_o their_o vocation_n no_o more_o then_o for_o the_o call_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v at_o this_o present_a in_o the_o romishe_a church_n call_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o even_o only_o of_o their_o doctrine_n chap._n vi_o that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v always_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v now_o and_o shall_v be_v even_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n but_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v esteem_v or_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v her_o beginning_n when_o the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n at_o which_o time_n the_o disciple_n be_v first_o name_v christian_n in_o antiochia_n but_o that_o she_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o the_o world_n even_o from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n adam_n and_o hevah_n for_o in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o god_n begin_v to_o be_v serve_v on_o the_o earth_n have_v bless_v they_o and_o commend_v unto_o they_o his_o service_n and_o after_o their_o fall_n have_v preach_v unto_o they_o repentance_n and_o assurance_n of_o victory_n against_o the_o serpent_n through_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n but_o the_o world_n increase_v the_o church_n also_o be_v augment_v serve_v god_n for_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v god_n create_v the_o world_n 26._o act._n 17_o 26._o &_o have_v make_v of_o one_o blood_n all_o man_n that_o they_o may_v seek_v and_o serve_v he_o and_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o isaiah_n this_o people_n have_v i_o form_v for_o myself_o they_o shall_v rehearse_v and_o show_v forth_o my_o praise_n 2d_o isai_n 48_o 2d_o god_n then_o create_v in_o the_o world_n and_o that_o from_o the_o beginning_n a_o church_n through_o free_a adoption_n to_o this_o end_n that_o his_o name_n may_v be_v due_o praise_v by_o convenient_a fit_a and_o meet_v witness_n for_o so_o excellent_a a_o work_n for_o this_o cause_n also_o the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o plant_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o
may_v be_v glorify_v isaiah_n 61.3_o 61.3_o isai_n 61.3_o moreover_o this_o church_n notwithstanding_o the_o sharp_a and_o hard_a persecution_n which_o it_o have_v suffer_v have_v not_o yet_o cease_v always_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v at_o this_o present_a and_o shall_v be_v unto_o the_o world_n end_n for_o as_o david_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v choose_v zion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v etc._n psal_n 132.13_o etc._n etc._n the_o church_n and_o have_v desire_v it_o for_o his_o seat_n ●it_n have_v be_v say_v he_o my_o rest_n for_o ever_o jesus_n christ_n also_o have_v promise_v his_o disciple_n 28.20_o mat._n 28.20_o to_o be_v with_o they_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o chief_o saint_n paul_n have_v declare_v and_o set_v out_o the_o perpetuity_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o assure_v we_o 3.21_o ephes_n 3.21_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v glorify_v in_o the_o church_n through_o jesus_n christ_n throughout_o all_o generation_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o they_o then_o be_v overmuch_o past_a shame_n which_o limit_v the_o continuance_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o certain_a time_n 54_o aug._n de_fw-fr civi_fw-la that_fw-mi dei_fw-la lib._n 18._o ca._n 54_o as_o those_o of_o who_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v who_o dare_v bold_o affirm_v that_o the_o christian_n religion_n shall_v not_o last_v but_o 365._o year_n they_o likewise_o do_v abuse_n and_o deceive_v themselves_o which_o think_v that_o by_o the_o assault_n which_o they_o give_v unto_o the_o church_n they_o be_v able_a to_o beat_v it_o down_o consume_v it_o &_o whole_o take_v it_o away_o out_o of_o the_o world_n for_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v without_o a_o church_n etc._n psal_n 10._o 1_o etc._n etc._n have_v not_o he_o himself_o promise_v that_o his_o son_n shall_v reign_v and_o bear_v rule_n for_o ever_o over_o all_o his_o enemy_n very_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o spouse_n or_o wife_n of_o christ_n be_v become_v or_o make_v so_o mighty_a and_o strong_a through_o her_o husband_n that_o be_v even_o one_o body_n with_o he_o she_o be_v more_o forcible_a and_o mighty_a in_o her_o weakness_n than_o all_o the_o world_n in_o his_o pride_n and_o haughtiness_n but_o as_o we_o have_v already_o say_v once_o heretofore_o we_o will_v hereafter_o speak_v more_o ample_o and_o large_o of_o the_o church_n force_n and_o power_n in_o persecution_n to_o be_v short_a amongst_o so_o many_o and_o so_o diverse_a change_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n god_n always_o preserve_v his_o church_n and_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o nothing_o in_o all_o the_o world_n be_v durable_a and_o perpetual_a but_o she_o not_o that_o she_o be_v always_o flourish_v or_o have_v a_o continuance_n which_o follow_v all_o by_o one_o thread_n that_o be_v come_v altogether_o but_o because_o that_o god_n not_o mind_v that_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v put_v out_o in_o the_o world_n do_v always_o in_o his_o church_n raise_v up_o some_o of_o who_o he_o be_v sincere_o and_o pure_o serve_v now_o when_o the_o question_n be_v to_o discern_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a some_o there_o be_v that_o stay_n themselves_o upon_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_a number_n but_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o their_o right_a reckon_n or_o account_n for_o god_n measure_v not_o his_o church_n by_o the_o number_n he_o love_v his_o faithful_a people_n and_o keep_v himself_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o 18.20_o mat._n 18.20_o although_o they_o be_v a_o very_a small_a number_n on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o hate_v those_o that_o do_v despise_v it_o and_o disdain_v they_o though_o the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v never_o so_o great_a and_o indeed_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o multitude_n and_o great_a number_n the_o false_a and_o bastardly_a church_n be_v rather_o find_v than_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a one_o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o let_v we_o first_o mark_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o withdraw_v we_o from_o the_o multitude_n and_o teach_v we_o to_o stay_v &_o cleave_v to_o the_o little_a flock_n thou_o shall_v not_o follow_v a_o multitude_n to_o do_v evil_a 7.13.14_o exod._n 23.2_o mat._n 7.13.14_o neither_o agree_v in_o a_o controversy_n to_o decline_v after_o many_o and_o to_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n enter_v in_o at_o the_o straight_a gate_n for_o it_o be_v the_o wide_a gate_n and_o broad_a way_n which_o lead_v to_o destruction_n &_o many_o therebe_n which_o go_v in_o thereat_o because_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n narrow_a that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o fear_v not_o little_a flock_n 12.32_o luke_n 12.32_o for_o it_o be_v your_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o a_o kingdom_n we_o see_v by_o these_o place_n that_o the_o great_a numbr_n be_v not_o always_o the_o best_a neither_o the_o sound_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v find_v rather_o amongst_o the_o small_a number_n then_o among_o the_o multitude_n second_o let_v we_o note_v the_o reason_n follow_v which_o be_v take_v from_o example_n that_o we_o find_v in_o the_o scripture_n touch_v this_o very_a matter_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n 11.7_o gene._n 7.1_o heb._n 11.7_o when_o noah_n alone_o with_o his_o little_a family_n which_o be_v not_o in_o all_o but_o eight_o person_n follow_v the_o true_a religion_n god_n approve_v he_o &_o by_o his_o faith_n condemn_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n 10_o 1_o kin._n 19_o 10_o when_o elijah_n say_v o_o lord_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n have_v forsake_v they_o covenant_n they_o have_v destroy_v thy_o altar_n and_o slay_v thy_o prophet_n with_o the_o sword_n and_o i_o be_o leave_v altogether_o alone_o and_o yet_o they_o seek_v my_o soul_n to_o take_v it_o away_o on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o the_o four_o hundred_o prophet_n deceive_v ahab_n 22.8_o 1._o kin._n 22.8_o and_o michaiah_n be_v alone_o and_o contemn_a do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o resist_v they_o and_o speak_v the_o truth_n on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o jeremiah_n be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o say_v in_o that_o day_n the_o heart_n of_o the_o king_n shall_v perish_v 4.9_o jere._n 4.9_o and_o the_o heart_n of_o prince_n and_o of_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v astonish_v and_o the_o prophet_n shall_v wonder_v and_o that_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n resist_v he_o 10.18_o jere_n 10.18_o lay_v crime_n unto_o his_o charge_n and_o imagine_a mischief_n against_o he_o 26.3_o math._n 26.3_o on_o which_o side_n be_v the_o church_n when_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o scribe_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n assemble_v themselves_o together_o into_o the_o hall_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n name_v caiaphas_n and_o hold_v a_o council_n how_o they_o may_v take_v jesus_n christ_n by_o subtlety_n &_o put_v he_o to_o death_n certain_o by_o these_o example_n it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o allege_v the_o multitude_n &_o the_o great_a number_n for_o to_o underproppe_v and_o uphold_v a_o church_n the_o false_a and_o bastardly_a church_n shall_v ever_o prevail_v in_o the_o matter_n and_o get_v the_o better_a in_o that_o respect_n because_o that_o the_o number_n which_o cleave_v to_o it_o and_o follow_v and_o maintain_v it_o be_v always_o the_o great_a 128._o august_n in_o psal_n 128._o let_v we_o add_v here_o a_o sentence_n of_o saint_n augustine_n from_o the_o time_n say_v he_o that_o the_o saint_n have_v begin_v to_o be_v the_o church_n have_v be_v and_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n sometime_o it_o be_v in_o abel_n alone_o who_o be_v slay_v by_o his_o wicked_a brother_n cain_n sometime_o it_o be_v in_o henoch_n alone_o who_o be_v reject_v of_o the_o ungodlie_a sometime_o it_o be_v in_o the_o only_a house_n of_o noah_n and_o he_o bear_v with_o or_o suffer_v all_o they_o that_o perish_v in_o the_o flood_n and_o the_o ark_n swim_v upon_o the_o flood_n be_v save_v and_o set_v upon_o the_o dry_a land_n sometime_o in_o one_o only_a abraham_n of_o who_o we_o know_v thus_o much_o that_o he_o suffer_v many_o thing_n by_o the_o wicked_a sometime_o in_o lott_n alone_o and_o in_o his_o only_a house_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sodomite_n who_o iniquity_n and_o ungodliness_n he_o endure_v and_o suffer_v so_o long_o till_o god_n draw_v he_o as_o it_o be_v by_o violence_n from_o among_o they_o sometime_o in_o the_o only_a israelite_n torment_v by_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o egyptian_n by_o these_o word_n that_o appear_v very_o well_o to_o be_v true_a and_o right_a which_o i_o have_v say_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v or_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n the_o faithful_a then_o shall_v not_o at_o this_o day_n be_v offend_v though_o they_o be_v
but_o a_o small_a number_n despise_v and_o cast_v out_o as_o the_o filth_n and_o ofscouring_n of_o the_o world_n for_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o world_n 5.19_o john_n 5.19_o but_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v and_o draw_v they_o out_o of_o the_o world_n therefore_o behold_v do_v the_o world_n hate_v they_o they_o shall_v not_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o with_o they_o though_o that_o it_o be_v assault_v and_o persecute_v of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o man_n and_o those_o the_o mighty_a of_o great_a reputation_n and_o high_a exalt_v and_o namely_o of_o the_o pope_n cardinal_n bishop_n 1.27.28.29_o 1._o cor._n 1.27.28.29_o parish_n priest_n abbot_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n who_o indeed_o ought_v to_o maintain_v and_o uphold_v it_o for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o god_n have_v choose_v the_o foolish_a thing_n of_o this_o world_n to_o confound_v the_o wise_a thing_n &_o the_o weak_a or_o feeble_a thing_n to_o confound_v the_o strong_a and_o the_o vile_a and_o despise_a thing_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v to_o naught_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n that_o no_o flesh_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o his_o presence_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o prophecy_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v whole_o accomplish_v 2.7_o psal_n 118.22_o matt._n 21.42_o 1._o pet._n 2.7_o touch_v the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n begin_v long_o ago_o to_o reject_v and_o which_o even_o at_o this_o day_n they_o do_v also_o refuse_v although_o it_o be_v the_o master_n stone_n or_o chief_a stone_n of_o the_o corner_n in_o zion_n elect_v and_o precious_a in_o they_o which_o stay_n themselves_o thereon_o and_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o but_o some_o will_v say_v wherefore_o then_o be_v it_o that_o god_n have_v heretofore_o suffer_v so_o many_o people_n in_o so_o many_o age_n and_o time_n to_o be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v yea_o wherefore_o do_v he_o at_o this_o day_n suffer_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o darkeness_n of_o error_n and_o ignorance_n very_o it_o be_v not_o our_o part_n to_o take_v upon_o we_o either_o to_o discover_v or_o curious_o to_o search_v the_o secret_a cause_n of_o god_n eternal_a judgement_n neither_o yet_o to_o lay_v or_o cast_v upon_o he_o the_o fault_n of_o our_o naughtiness_n and_o ungodliness_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v most_o just_o govern_v and_o guide_v all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o can_v do_v injury_n or_o wrong_n to_o any_o man_n what_o so_o ever_o he_o do_v 2.3_o psal_n 51_o 5._o eph._n 2.3_o see_v that_o we_o be_v all_o conceive_a and_o bear_v in_o iniquity_n and_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n guilty_a of_o death_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n and_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n in_o few_o word_n dissolve_v this_o difficulty_n content_v himself_o to_o allege_v the_o only_a will_n and_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n without_o ascend_v or_o go_v up_o high_o so_o much_o as_o one_o step_n ●0_n act._n 14.16_o act._n 17._o ●0_n god_n say_v he_o in_o time_n pass_v have_v suffer_v all_o the_o gentile_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n nevertheless_o he_o leave_v not_o himself_o without_o witness_n in_o that_o he_o do_v good_a etc._n etc._n and_o again_o the_o time_n of_o this_o ignorance_n god_n regard_v not_o but_o now_o he_o admonish_v all_o man_n every_o where_o to_o repent_v notwithstanding_o also_o we_o may_v tight_o say_v that_o god_n suffer_v satan_n to_o have_v so_o much_o power_n and_o might_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o he_o shall_v bear_v sway_n &_o reign_v over_o the_o great_a part_n to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o through_o his_o just_a judgement_n punish_v man_n for_o their_o unthankfulness_n and_o unfaithfulnesse_n for_o it_o be_v not_o good_a reason_n that_o those_o which_o will_v not_o hearken_v unto_o god_n neither_o receive_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v offer_v they_o and_o who_o also_o even_o willing_o and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n have_v despise_v and_o refuse_v their_o own_o salvation_n be_v it_o not_o meet_v i_o say_v that_o such_o shall_v be_v seduce_v and_o deceive_v through_o the_o subtlety_n and_o sleight_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o at_o the_o last_o cast_v from_o god_n and_o through_o his_o just_a judgement_n punish_v according_a as_o their_o ungodliness_n and_o unthankfulness_n deserve_v sainte_n paul_n write_v unto_o the_o thessalonian_o show_v and_o put_v down_o this_o reason_n 2.10_o 2._o thess_n 2.10_o when_o he_o say_v that_o because_o that_o they_o which_o perish_v receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n that_o all_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o word_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n this_o also_o fall_v sometime_o and_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o gentile_n for_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n god_n make_v manifest_a unto_o they_o his_o godhead_n and_o his_o power_n etc._n rom._n 1.20_o etc._n etc._n and_o although_o this_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o man_n yet_o it_o be_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o creature_n in_o which_o his_o glory_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n manifest_v and_o show_v that_o a_o man_n may_v well_o say_v they_o have_v in_o some_o sense_n a_o tongue_n as_o it_o be_v to_o show_v set_v forth_o and_o rehearse_v the_o great_a power_n of_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n but_o what_o thereof_o these_o straggler_n &_o strayer_n have_v know_v god_n do_v not_o glorify_v he_o as_o god_n neither_o yield_v he_o thanks_n but_o become_v vain_a in_o their_o imagination_n and_o discourse_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o saint_n paul_n show_v of_o they_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n who_o will_v then_o at_o this_o day_n say_v that_o god_n have_v do_v they_o wrong_n when_o he_o give_v they_o over_o to_o the_o lust_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n to_o filthiness_n and_o their_o own_o villainous_a affection_n through_o a_o spirit_n destitute_a and_o unfurnished_a of_o all_o judgement_n to_o commit_v thing_n at_o no_o hand_n convenient_a or_o seemly_a he_o punish_v they_o after_o his_o manner_n according_a to_o their_o desert_n and_o his_o own_o most_o just_a righteousness_n the_o same_o fall_v also_o in_o time_n heretofore_o upon_o the_o poor_a and_o miserable_a jew_n for_o behold_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o of_o his_o own_o free_a will_n present_v and_o offer_v himself_o unto_o they_o be_v willing_a and_o ready_a to_o instruct_v and_o teach_v they_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n confirm_v his_o gospel_n by_o excellent_a miracle_n and_o authentical_a sign_n worthy_a of_o credit_n by_o which_o he_o do_v evident_o show_v unto_o they_o that_o he_o be_v the_o very_a messiah_n promise_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o true_a and_o only_a redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n but_o how_o do_v these_o miserable_a people_n govern_v and_o behave_v they_o self_n in_o that_o behalf_n their_o obstinacy_n and_o rebellion_n be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o content_a desperate_o to_o reject_v and_o throw_v from_o they_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n slander_v it_o and_o accuse_v it_o of_o falsehood_n but_o which_o be_v worse_o they_o kill_v and_o cruel_o murder_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n and_o outrageous_o persecute_v the_o apostle_n as_o before_o that_o they_o have_v put_v to_o death_n also_o even_o their_o own_o prophet_n and_o other_o christian_n who_o be_v he_o then_o which_o will_v affirm_v that_o these_o wicked_a people_n do_v not_o through_o their_o rebellion_n and_o pride_n just_o deserve_v to_o be_v deliver_v and_o give_v over_o for_o a_o prey_n unto_o satan_n and_o to_o be_v deceive_v through_o the_o subtlety_n &_o craft_n of_o his_o false_a doctrine_n the_o same_o be_v fall_v out_o in_o our_o time_n and_o continue_v yet_o even_o every_o day_n for_o there_o be_v diverse_a which_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n blind_v and_o before_o hand_n possess_v with_o the_o darkeness_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o despise_v all_o true_a religion_n and_o doctrine_n but_o also_o they_o enforce_v and_o strain_v themselves_o to_o bring_v into_o credit_n and_o estimation_n all_o the_o dream_n dotage_n railing_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o instrument_n in_o so_o much_o that_o for_o to_o attain_v thereto_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o make_v war_n upon_o the_o poor_a faithful_a people_n desire_v with_o a_o burn_a affection_n the_o shed_n of_o their_o blood_n who_o be_v he_o then_o which_o dare_v say_v that_o such_o people_n be_v not_o very_o worthy_a and_o meet_a to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n that_o they_o may_v be_v so_o make_v drunken_a with_o
the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n be_v understand_v not_o the_o rule_n or_o oversight_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v or_o else_o to_o pardon_v or_o not_o pardon_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o 18._o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n after_o saint_n matthew_n and_o chap._n 20._o after_o s._n john_n 20.23_o mat._n 18.18_o john_n 20.23_o now_o see_v that_o so_o it_o be_v that_o power_n to_o remit_v or_o to_o retain_v sin_n be_v give_v not_o unto_o peter_n only_o but_o equal_o unto_o all_o the_o apostle_n it_o follow_v well_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n be_v not_o give_v to_o saint_n peter_n alone_o but_o also_o to_o all_o his_o companion_n &_o fellow_n &_o by_o consequent_a if_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v give_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n have_v so_o many_o head_n as_o it_o have_v then_o apostle_n but_o some_o will_v say_v jesus_n christ_n speak_v only_o to_o peter_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o how_o be_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o peter_n be_v understand_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o even_o as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v willing_a to_o hear_v what_o judgement_n not_o only_a peter_n but_o also_o all_o his_o fellow_n have_v of_o he_o when_o he_o demand_v of_o they_o but_o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o 16.15.16_o mat._n 16.15.16_o and_o that_o peter_n alone_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o answer_v and_o make_v this_o confession_n thou_o be_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n jesus_n christ_n give_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n unto_o the_o church_n address_v his_o speech_n unto_o peter_n alone_o although_o he_o mean_v to_o speak_v as_o well_o unto_o all_o the_o rest_n 50_o augu._n in_o johan_n tract_n 50_o and_o so_o do_v saint_n augustine_n understande_v it_o for_o behold_v how_o he_o speak_v peter_n say_v he_o signify_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o if_o that_o in_o peter_n there_o be_v not_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v say_v unto_o he_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o again_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n etc._n etc._n he_o mean_v without_o doubt_n the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o reason_n will_v be_v mark_v why_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o speak_v unto_o all_o that_o be_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v commend_v &_o set_v out_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n even_o as_o also_o the_o ancient_a writer_n have_v mark_v and_o observe_v the_o same_o praelat_fw-la cypr._n tract_n 3_o de_fw-la simpli_fw-la praelat_fw-la s._n cyprian_n say_v thus_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o person_n of_o one_o man_n have_v give_v the_o key_n unto_o all_o thereby_o to_o denote_v and_o set_v out_o the_o unity_n of_o al._n the_o other_o be_v the_o same_o in_o deed_n that_o peter_n be_v fellow_n in_o equal_a honour_n and_o in_o equal_a power_n but_o jesus_n begin_v with_o one_o man_n to_o the_o end_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o and_o augustine_n 11._o august_n in_o johan._n tract_n 11._o so_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o all_o be_v ask_v peter_n alone_o answer_v he_o thou_o be_v christ_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o he_o be_v it_o say_v i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o though_o power_n to_o bind_v &_o loose_v have_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o alone_o but_o as_o he_o answer_v for_o all_o so_o he_o receive_v the_o key_n together_o withal_o bear_v as_o it_o be_v the_o person_n of_o unity_n wherefore_o he_o alone_o be_v name_v for_o all_o because_o there_o be_v unity_n among_o all_o 3_o the_o three_o reason_n be_v 21.16_o john_n 21.16_o jesus_n christ_n command_v peter_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n yea_o &_o that_o three_o time_n to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n he_o than_o do_v constitute_v and_o make_v he_o a_o universal_a bishop_n and_o head_n of_o all_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o consequent_a be_v false_a for_o there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a not_o only_a difference_n but_o contrariety_n between_o these_o two_o to_o have_v charge_n to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v a_o most_o high_a empire_n and_o universal_a rule_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n beside_o if_o to_o feed_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o to_o minister_v and_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o spiritual_a food_n of_o their_o soul_n 16.15_o mat._n 28.19_o mark_n 16.15_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a and_o plain_a that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v this_o commission_n to_o all_o his_o apostle_n general_o it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o he_o have_v not_o give_v it_o to_o peter_n alone_o and_o indeed_o peter_n himself_o do_v well_o confess_v the_o same_o etc._n 1._o pet._n 1.5_o etc._n etc._n when_o he_o exhort_v his_o fellow_n minister_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o basil_n confirm_v the_o same_o say_v jesus_n christ_n himself_o teach_v we_o this_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o do_v constitute_v and_o appoint_v peter_n the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n after_o he_o for_o he_o say_v peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n &_o consequent_o he_o have_v give_v this_o very_a same_o power_n to_o all_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n and_o hereof_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n and_o sure_a token_n that_o all_o bind_v and_o loose_v without_o any_o difference_n as_o well_o as_o he_o the_o four_o reason_n s._n peter_n be_v diverse_a time_n in_o the_o scripture_n name_v the_o first_o among_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o he_o be_v choose_v to_o have_v rule_n above_o the_o other_o his_o fellow_n yea_o above_o or_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o this_o argument_n be_v frivolous_a and_o vain_a yea_o worthy_a to_o be_v mock_v and_o hiss_v at_o for_o be_v it_o that_o we_o confess_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a as_o it_o be_v among_o a_o few_o people_n that_o be_v to_o say_v among_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n yet_o very_o far_o set_v be_v this_o that_o it_o shall_v therefore_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o or_o chief_a over_o all_o christian_n or_o that_o he_o do_v bear_v rule_n over_o all_o the_o world_n second_o if_o because_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o first_o name_v he_o be_v therefore_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a among_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v then_o say_v by_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v the_o last_o and_o least_o of_o all_o woman_n because_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n where_o also_o s._n peter_n be_v set_v the_o first_o in_o the_o catalogue_n or_o number_n 1.13.14_o act._n 1.13.14_o she_o be_v set_v the_o last_o after_o other_o which_o matter_n the_o romishe_a catholic_n will_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n say_v or_o affirm_v which_o if_o they_o shall_v it_o will_v be_v find_v in_o deed_n a_o very_a absurd_a thing_n three_o we_o read_v in_o many_o place_n that_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o name_v first_o and_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathian_o place_v james_n before_o he_o 2.9_o gal._n 2.9_o james_n then_o by_o this_o reason_n shall_v have_v authority_n over_o peter_n because_o he_o be_v name_v before_o he_o beside_o in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o speech_n and_o advice_n of_o james_n which_o be_v have_v after_o that_o peter_n have_v give_v he_o etc._n act_n 15._o 13_o etc._n etc._n have_v such_o weight_n with_o it_o that_o all_o consent_v and_o agree_v to_o his_o judgement_n and_o this_o much_o concern_v the_o first_o point_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o other_o which_o concern_v the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o so_o by_o consequent_a the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n first_o if_o it_o manifest_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v heretofore_o that_o saint_n peter_n be_v never_o establish_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o never_o have_v any_o such_o pre-eminence_n and_o authority_n attribute_v unto_o he_o by_o what_o title_n or_o right_a can_v or_o will_v the_o pope_n who_o say_v that_o he_o be_v his_o successor_n pretend_v at_o this_o day_n any_o such_o lordship_n rule_n and_o authority_n let_v we_o also_o on_o the_o other_o side_n well_o mark_v this_o s._n peter_n die_v as_o they_o say_v under_o nero_n and_o there_o succeed_v he_o linus_n cletus_n and_o clemens_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n john_n who_o
live_v under_o domitian_n and_o even_o unto_o trajan_n his_o day_n now_o if_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n which_o succeed_v saint_n peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_n they_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o s._n john_n be_v subject_a to_o linus_n to_o cletus_n and_o to_o clemens_n moreover_o if_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n clemens_n who_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o three_o place_n as_o they_o say_v be_v so_o likewise_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o a_o epistle_n which_o as_o some_o say_v he_o write_v to_o james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o title_n or_o inscription_n be_v this_o clemens_n 2._o tom._n 1._o council_n pag._n 135._o col_fw-fr 2._o to_o james_n the_o lord_n brother_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o of_o all_o other_o church_n which_o by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n if_o clemens_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n why_o do_v he_o spoil_v himself_o of_o his_o own_o title_n to_o attribute_v ascribe_v and_o give_v the_o same_o unto_o james_n to_o who_o they_o do_v not_o belong_v furthermore_o who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v lift_v up_o the_o pope_n into_o this_o goodly_a degree_n of_o honour_n be_v it_o jesus_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n no_o in_o deed_n for_o we_o read_v that_o bonifacius_n the_o third_o of_o that_o name_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v by_o the_o emperor_n phocas_n ordain_v the_o first_o sovereign_n or_o chief_a of_o all_o christendom_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n establish_a head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n six_o hundred_o and_o four_o this_o phocas_n as_o the_o history_n writer_n rehearse_v and_o record_v be_v a_o traitor_n and_o a_o unfaithful_a murderer_n of_o the_o emperor_n mauritius_n his_o master_n for_o as_o the_o say_v mauritius_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n show_v himself_o over_o severe_a and_o rigorous_a against_o his_o soldier_n they_o be_v give_v to_o debate_n and_o contention_n choose_v phocas_n for_o emperor_n who_o in_o calcedonia_n immediate_o cause_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o the_o forename_a mauritius_n his_o own_o head_n his_o wife_n also_o and_o his_o three_o son_n name_v theodorus_n tiberius_n and_o constantine_n but_o he_o receive_v his_o payment_n and_o reward_n for_o it_o afterward_o for_o have_v reign_v eight_o year_n he_o be_v at_o the_o last_o slay_v by_o the_o common_a people_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 612._o behold_v and_o mark_v by_o who_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v establish_v and_o the_o roman_a bishop_n make_v a_o universal_a bishop_n there_o be_v before_o not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o news_n of_o it_o for_o as_o concern_v a_o certain_a edict_n or_o decree_n which_o they_o allege_v by_o which_o constantine_n the_o great_a a_o christian_a emperor_n give_v unto_o silvester_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 317_o spiritual_a domination_n and_o government_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n also_o the_o jewel_n and_o kingly_a ornament_n yea_o the_o empire_n itself_o and_o politic_a government_n over_o all_o the_o west_n part_n it_o be_v a_o write_v find_v and_o forge_v for_o and_o at_o their_o pleasure_n full_a of_o lying_n also_o and_o falsehood_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v by_o these_o reason_n there_o be_v none_o of_o all_o the_o approve_a historiographer_n during_o certain_a age_n which_o make_v mention_v thereof_o after_o any_o sort_n as_o eusebius_n eutropius_n ruffinus_n socrates_n theodoretus_n beda_n euagrius_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la zonaras_n nicephorus_n orosius_n either_o other_o the_o like_a yea_o they_o which_o have_v write_v the_o life_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n have_v not_o any_o whit_n at_o all_o speak_v thereof_o no_o more_o have_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n athanasius_n basilius_n saint_n ambrose_n gregory_n nissenus_n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la saint_n augustine_n chrysostome_n which_o be_v more_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o have_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n thereof_o no_o not_o in_o council_n when_o they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o the_o care_n and_o charge_n to_o maintain_v their_o primacy_n which_o will_v notwithstanding_o have_v be_v a_o good_a buckler_n and_o shield_n of_o defence_n for_o they_o if_o constantine_n give_v to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n the_o primacy_n over_o constantinople_n antioch_n alexandria_n jerusalem_n and_o all_o other_o church_n what_o reason_n have_v he_o to_o suffer_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a whereat_o he_o himself_o be_v precedent_n that_o the_o contrary_n shall_v there_o be_v determine_v and_o conclude_v 342._o council_n nic._n can._n 6._o &_o habetur_fw-la tom_n 1._o council_n pag._n 342._o for_o in_o that_o council_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n or_o of_o antioch_n or_o of_o jerusalem_n if_o the_o foresay_a emperor_n ordain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v hold_v and_o take_v for_o the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o then_o do_v bonifacius_n demand_v and_o seek_v the_o same_o of_o phocas_n whereas_o he_o shall_v rather_o have_v require_v to_o have_v keep_v the_o same_o to_o himself_o and_o his_o successor_n which_o be_v long_o before_o grant_v by_o constantine_n to_o his_o predecessor_n with_o what_o conscience_n will_v constantine_n give_v unto_o silvester_n lordship_n and_o government_n over_o the_o church_n and_o the_o empire_n he_o himself_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o therefore_o by_o consequent_a know_v very_o well_o that_o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n and_o difference_n between_o the_o office_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o charge_n and_o duty_n of_o magistrate_n eusebius_n eusebius_n even_o as_o eusebius_n witness_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v and_o commit_v the_o inward_a charge_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o elder_n &_o minister_n but_o the_o outward_a to_o he_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v silvester_n with_o what_o conscience_n also_o can_v he_o accept_v the_o say_a donation_n or_o gift_n the_o use_n whereof_o as_o he_o well_o enough_o know_v jesus_n christ_n have_v forbid_v he_o 22.21_o luk._n 22.25_o mat._n 22.21_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o sentence_n the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n bear_v rule_v etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o amongst_o you_o also_o give_v unto_o caesar_n the_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n wherefore_o see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v distinguish_v the_o office_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n silvester_n do_v very_o ill_a to_o confound_v and_o jumble_v they_o together_o in_o his_o own_o person_n yea_o also_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a canon_n to_o this_o purpose_n etc._n distinct_a 96._o can._n quum_fw-la ad_fw-la nico_n etc._n etc._n avouch_v and_o allege_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o pope_n &_o that_o these_o office_n be_v distinguish_v by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o so_o be_v that_o constantine_n give_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n part_n to_o silvester_n they_o must_v say_v that_o silvester_n possess_v the_o same_o and_o leave_v it_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o that_o if_o his_o successor_n do_v not_o any_o long_o hold_v it_o they_o must_v say_v that_o they_o have_v be_v thrust_v and_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o possession_n thereof_o but_o let_v they_o show_v if_o they_o can_v any_o matter_n touch_v this_o point_n in_o the_o history_n verilye_o so_o far_o be_v it_o that_o silvester_n &_o those_o which_o succeed_v he_o even_o unto_o hildebrande_n who_o be_v name_v gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o be_v create_v pope_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n one_o thousand_o seventie_o four_o do_v hold_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o west_n that_o indeed_o they_o have_v not_o rule_v or_o authority_n over_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n but_o do_v peaceable_o and_o quiet_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n for_o their_o lord_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o law_n neither_o be_v there_o at_o any_o time_n a_o pope_n choose_v or_o create_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o change_n come_v in_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o foresay_a gregory_n it_o be_v about_o five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o since_o the_o pope_n have_v by_o little_a &_o little_o encroach_v upon_o the_o empire_n &_o have_v at_o the_o last_o bring_v into_o their_o subjection_n the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o since_o they_o do_v accomplish_v that_o there_o be_v not_o pass_v above_o a_o hundred_o threescore_o and_o nine_o
be_v write_v to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o which_o there_o shall_v be_v declare_v unto_o he_o that_o he_o do_v attribute_n and_o take_v unto_o himself_o a_o authority_n which_o do_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n belong_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o in_o so_o do_v he_o offer_v great_a wrong_n to_o other_o church_n and_o other_o bishop_n and_o there_o be_v add_v to_o the_o letter_n that_o he_o shall_v no_o more_o meddle_v with_o they_o who_o they_o have_v depose_v than_o they_o meddle_v with_o those_o which_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o which_o be_v join_v with_o he_o therein_o to_o which_o purpose_n they_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o novatus_fw-la which_o be_v as_o yet_o very_o fresh_a and_o new_a for_o when_o this_o novatus_fw-la be_v reject_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n none_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o metropolitanes_n and_o bishop_n of_o other_o province_n do_v gainsay_v the_o same_o neither_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n intermedle_v therein_o furthermore_o if_o that_o which_o be_v maintain_v and_o practise_v at_o this_o day_n amongst_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n touch_v the_o large_a jurisdiction_n and_o sovereignty_n of_o their_o pope_n be_v in_o force_n by_o god_n law_n as_o they_o will_v persuade_v the_o simple_a people_n thereof_o shall_v not_o then_o all_o the_o foresay_a bishop_n &_o all_o other_o together_o with_o their_o council_n and_o church_n which_o have_v not_o at_o any_o time_n confess_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o their_o head_n be_v very_o greevous_o censure_v or_o punish_v and_o worthy_a of_o a_o very_a severe_a and_o sharp_a reprehension_n it_o be_v true_a that_o man_n may_v find_v that_o some_o among_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v sometime_o call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n high_a priest_n and_o pope_n but_o they_o do_v heretofore_o call_v after_o the_o same_o sort_n all_o bishop_n for_o as_o touch_v the_o name_n high_a priest_n 7_o theodo_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 7_o theodoretus_n in_o his_o second_o book_n &_o chap._n 7._o speak_v on_o this_o manner_n that_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o high_a priest_n be_v assemble_v together_o in_o sardis_n and_o athanasius_n in_o his_o first_o oration_n against_o the_o arrian_n arriano●_n athanasius_n oratio_fw-la 1._o contra_fw-la arriano●_n do_v not_o only_o call_v julius_n and_o liberius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n high_a priest_n but_o also_o he_o call_v by_o the_o very_a same_o name_n the_o bishop_n of_o grecia_n dacia_n cappadotia_n africa_n 26._o ruffin_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 26._o italy_n sicilia_n and_o armenia_n ruffinus_n also_o in_o the_o second_o book_n and_o 26._o chapter_n call_v athanasius_n the_o great_a high_a priest_n as_o concern_v the_o name_n pope_n we_o will_v speak_v thereof_o by_o god_n grace_n and_o aid_n hereafter_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n moreover_o let_v we_o consider_v by_o what_o token_n and_o mark_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n say_v that_o he_o be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n it_o be_v say_v the_o romish_a catholic_n because_o that_o saint_n peter_n have_v his_o seat_n and_o chair_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v there_o the_o pastor_n and_o have_v bear_v rule_n there_o a_o long_a time_n and_o that_o after_o he_o there_o come_v in_o order_n his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v before_o but_o touch_v the_o first_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o s._n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o no_o at_o the_o least_o whether_o he_o bate_v rule_v there_o and_o hold_v the_o seat_n they_o be_v not_o able_a plain_o to_o prove_v the_o same_o neither_o to_o approve_v it_o as_o truth_n at_o what_o time_n it_o be_v neither_o under_o what_o emperor_n neither_o how_o long_o because_o that_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v 14._o cal._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 6._o sect_n 14._o so_o much_o as_o one_o only_a probable_a conjecture_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a as_o caluin_n have_v well_o and_o sufficient_o declare_v in_o his_o institution_n second_o if_o s._n peter_n abode_n at_o rome_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n to_o the_o romish_a bishop_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o universal_a bishop_n from_z whence_o come_v it_o that_o the_o counsel_n have_v limit_v to_o all_o the_o patriarch_n who_o be_v many_o and_o diverse_a yea_o even_o after_o that_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o four_o 13._o council_n nic._n can._n 6._o council_n antioch_n can._n 13._o their_o several_a charge_n make_v they_o metropolitanes_n every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o province_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o more_o authority_n over_o other_o than_o other_o over_o he_o for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v very_o well_o have_v allege_v saint_n peter_n seat_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n and_o counsel_n will_v very_o well_o have_v confess_v and_o allow_v the_o same_o if_o it_o have_v be_v true_a and_o if_o the_o same_o can_v right_o have_v give_v the_o title_n of_o primacy_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o side_n what_o a_o argument_n be_v this_o saint_n peter_n be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o there_o suffer_v martyrdom_n therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o this_o church_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o be_v the_o universal_a and_o general_a head_n of_o all_o christendom_n very_o if_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o question_n be_v to_o establish_v and_o set_v up_o a_o primacy_n it_o ought_v rather_o to_o be_v place_v at_o jerusalem_n than_o at_o rome_n for_o saint_n peter_n preach_v there_o 4.3_o act._n 2.14_o act._n 2.12_o act._n 4.3_o yea_o the_o first_o after_o christ_n ascension_n where_o he_o together_o with_o his_o fellow_n and_o brethren_n build_v up_o the_o church_n do_v great_a miracle_n be_v imprison_v 18_o act._n 5._o 18_o and_o sundry_a time_n persecute_v the_o prophet_n likewise_o preach_v there_o and_o all_o the_o apostle_n yea_o which_o be_v more_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o 18.20_o joh._n 2.13_o &_o 7.14_o &_o 8.2_o etc._n etc._n 18.20_o die_v there_o and_o rose_n again_o and_o from_o thence_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n there_o also_o be_v the_o first_o synod_n that_o ever_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n assemble_v of_o all_o the_o apostle_n there_o also_o jesus_n christ_n send_v down_o his_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o his_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n &c_n act._n 15._o 6_o etc._n etc._n act._n 2.1_o &c_n &c_n and_o to_o be_v short_a from_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n shall_v come_v forth_o to_o be_v spread_v abroad_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n even_o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v before_o tell_v 4.2_o isai_n 2.3_o michah_n 4.2_o which_o thing_n we_o can_v after_o any_o sort_n say_v or_o affirm_v of_o rome_n moreover_o if_o we_o must_v respect_v and_o regard_v the_o apostle_n there_o be_v as_o much_o or_o rather_o more_o reason_n to_o make_v saint_n paul_n the_o first_o bishop_n or_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o saint_n peter_n for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n beside_o that_o he_o be_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n less_o or_o inferior_a to_o the_o most_o excellent_a or_o chief_a apostle_n 11.5_o 2._o cor._n 11.5_o we_o find_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n do_v at_o any_o time_n reproove_v he_o in_o his_o ministry_n 11_o gal._n 2._o 11_o as_o he_o reprove_v or_o blame_v s._n peter_n and_o beside_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a and_o a_o assure_a testimony_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n touch_v saint_n paul_n 31_o act_n 23.11_o act._n 28.30_o 31_o that_o he_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o rome_n there_o to_o bear_v witness_n of_o he_o &_o that_o he_o there_o preach_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n two_o whole_a year_n together_o that_o from_o thence_o he_o write_v diverse_a epistle_n to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v there_o prisoner_n and_o at_o the_o last_o behead_v by_o nero._n and_o as_o touch_v peter_n we_o have_v no_o assure_a testimony_n that_o he_o go_v to_o rome_n or_o that_o he_o tarry_v there_o exercise_v there_o the_o ministry_n if_o they_o will_v reply_v that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v he_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o that_o by_o that_o mean_n he_o be_v prefer_v before_o saint_n paul_n and_o make_v head_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v answer_v that_o heretofore_o which_o we_o mind_v not_o here_o to_o repeat_v beside_o though_o it_o be_v so_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v to_o bear_v rule_n over_o all_o church_n as_o a_o apostle_n yet_o it_o can_v not_o thereupon_o follow_v that_o his_o successor_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o such_o right_a or_o authority_n as_o he_o because_o they_o which_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o same_o charge_n and_o the_o same_o office_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v for_o
church_n 8._o cyprian_a lib._n 2._o epist._n 7_o rom._n 1._o 8._o to_o wit_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v spread_v abroad_o and_o publish_v throughout_o all_o the_o woorlde_n shall_v be_v turn_v to_o their_o shame_n and_o dispraise_v if_o they_o go_v out_o of_o kind_n and_o become_v bastard_n and_o if_o they_o continue_v not_o to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o by_o this_o departure_n from_o she_o we_o have_v declare_v the_o obedience_n which_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n who_o have_v command_v we_o to_o do_v so_o say_v go_v out_o of_o babylon_n my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n &_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o counsel_n of_o s._n ambrose_n who_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o church_n which_o refuse_v the_o faith_n &_o keep_v not_o the_o foundation_n or_o groundwork_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v we_o must_v leave_v she_o lest_o she_o bring_v with_o her_o the_o infection_n of_o error_n and_o unbelief_n this_o he_o have_v write_v upon_o the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o s._n luke_n but_o some_o will_v say_v you_o account_v the_o reform_a church_n of_o germany_n for_o the_o true_a church_n though_o you_o find_v there_o many_o thing_n to_o be_v amend_v as_o concern_v the_o supper_n itself_o and_o some_o other_o ceremony_n why_o then_o make_v you_o not_o the_o like_a account_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o there_o be_v some_o controversy_n between_o the_o german_n and_o we_o touch_v some_o point_n of_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o essential_a or_o substantial_a point_n thereof_o i_o call_v they_o essential_a or_o substantial_a point_n that_o be_v so_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o religion_n that_o if_o man_n err_v in_o one_o point_n the_o same_o can_v subsist_v or_o stand_v for_o even_o in_o that_o which_o concern_v the_o holy_a supper_n we_o all_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o difference_n be_v not_o but_o in_o the_o consubstantiation_n which_o they_o maintain_v which_o be_v not_o of_o such_o great_a importance_n and_o weight_n as_o transubstantiation_n which_o the_o romish_a pretend_v which_o even_o in_o that_o one_o point_n overthrow_v and_o utterl_o bring_v to_o nothing_o godliness_n put_v a_o idol_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o make_v of_o the_o creature_n a_o creator_n and_o of_o christ_n a_o subject_n to_o corruption_n rase_v from_o the_o foundation_n and_o turn_v topsy_n turnie_n as_o we_o say_v that_o which_o concern_v the_o propriety_n the_o nature_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o body_n all_o which_o abomination_n and_o idolatry_n the_o german_n that_o be_v reform_v do_v detest_v and_o set_v themselves_o against_o as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o if_o some_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o make_v divorce_n as_o it_o be_v and_o separation_n between_o the_o german_n and_o we_o will_v allege_v that_o the_o foresay_a german_n have_v not_o the_o like_a opinion_n of_o we_o that_o we_o have_v of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o hold_v and_o account_v we_o for_o heretic_n as_o may_v be_v see_v and_o prove_v by_o certain_a writing_n which_o they_o have_v set_v abroad_o and_o publish_v we_o answer_v that_o the_o passion_n affection_n and_o heat_n of_o some_o particular_a person_n who_o have_v write_v somewhat_o more_o free_o than_o they_o shall_v ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v regard_v and_o esteem_v that_o thereupon_o they_o will_v make_v a_o general_a conclusion_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o division_n between_o all_o they_o and_o us._n for_o albeit_o there_o be_v some_o diversity_n between_o they_o and_o we_o in_o this_o point_n touch_v the_o supper_n and_o in_o some_o certain_a ceremony_n yet_o unity_n do_v not_o therefore_o cease_v to_o continue_v and_o remain_v always_o amongst_o us._n 22._o socrat._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 22._o socrates_n who_o write_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n say_v thus_o there_o be_v not_o any_o religion_n which_o observe_v the_o same_o ceremony_n though_o it_o do_v receive_v and_o admit_v one_o and_o the_o self_n doctrine_n touch_v ceremony_n and_o in_o deed_n they_o which_o have_v the_o same_o faith_n sometime_o differ_v amongst_o themselves_o touch_v some_o ceremony_n and_o observation_n irenaeus_n write_v to_o victor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 26._o euseb_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 26._o rehearse_v that_o there_o be_v great_a diversity_n in_o the_o church_n touch_v fast_v and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n afterward_o he_o add_v notwithstanding_o though_o there_o be_v diversity_n amongst_o all_o these_o touch_v ceremony_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v that_o they_o do_v always_o agree_v with_o we_o and_o the_o discord_n or_o difference_n about_o fast_v do_v not_o break_v the_o concord_n or_o unity_n of_o faith_n so_o then_o follow_v these_o place_n we_o affirm_v that_o we_o leave_v not_o of_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o company_n of_o the_o reform_a german_n for_o the_o true_a church_n although_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o every_o point_n and_o thorough_o agree_v with_o they_o touch_v some_o matter_n consider_v in_o the_o supper_n &_o some_o ceremony_n observe_v amongst_o they_o and_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n teach_v we_o this_o as_o saint_n paul_n have_v give_v we_o a_o good_a example_n thereof_o when_o he_o call_v the_o corinthian_n and_o the_o galathian_o 1.2_o 1._o cor._n 1.2_o 2._o cor._n 1.1_o gal._n 1.2_o saint_n and_o faithful_a one_o and_o give_v unto_o they_o in_o general_a the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n although_o there_o be_v amongst_o they_o great_a and_o grievous_a fault_n as_o well_o in_o ignorance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n as_o in_o their_o own_o life_n and_o manner_n this_o be_v that_o also_o which_o he_o have_v set_v forth_o in_o a_o other_o place_n say_v that_o all_o they_o which_o hold_v and_o keep_v the_o foundation_n do_v not_o always_o build_v gold_n and_o silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n but_o hay_n and_o stubble_n but_o some_o say_v why_o follow_v you_o not_o the_o same_o rule_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o ceremony_n &_o service_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n the_o purity_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o there_o observe_v and_o keep_v but_o the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n be_v amongst_o they_o corrupt_v and_o falsify_v and_o therefore_o can_v not_o without_o offend_v god_n apply_v or_o frame_v ourselves_o unto_o they_o and_o saint_n augustin_n have_v give_v we_o this_o lesson_n teach_v we_o how_o far_o we_o may_v communicate_v in_o the_o ceremony_n and_o service_n of_o other_o church_n januarium_fw-la august_n ad_fw-la januarium_fw-la there_o be_v no_o better_a rule_n in_o this_o behalf_n say_v he_o than_o a_o wise_a and_o sober_a christian_a himself_o which_o will_v frame_v himself_o to_o that_o custom_n which_o he_o shall_v see_v use_v in_o that_o church_n wherein_o he_o live_v for_o that_o which_o be_v not_o establish_v against_o faith_n or_o against_o good_a manner_n must_v be_v hold_v for_o indifferent_a but_o the_o church_n allow_v not_o that_o which_o be_v against_o faith_n and_o good_a life_n yea_o she_o dissemble_v it_o not_o neither_o do_v it_o to_o be_v short_a then_o for_o so_o much_o as_o we_o can_v be_v present_a at_o the_o service_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n without_o defile_v ourselves_o in_o their_o manifest_a idolatry_n you_o may_v see_v wherefore_o we_o do_v whole_o and_o altogether_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v the_o same_o and_o in_o this_o deed_n of_o we_o we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o prophet_n for_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o day_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la circumcision_n be_v administer_v and_o there_o they_o offer_v sacrifice_n yea_o the_o law_n be_v esteem_v there_o among_o they_o as_o holy_a and_o which_o be_v more_o god_n himself_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o pray_v to_o there_o yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o superstition_n and_o ceremony_n which_o man_n have_v devise_v and_o set_v up_o against_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n all_o that_o service_n be_v reject_v and_o conden_v neither_o can_v any_o man_n show_v that_o eliiah_n or_o any_o other_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o of_o any_o other_o call_v do_v at_o any_o time_n worship_n or_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n in_o bethell_n but_o see_v more_o large_o touch_v this_o matter_n in_o that_o which_o m._n caluine_n have_v write_v thereof_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o his_o institution_n chap._n 2._o sect_n 1.2.3.4.5_o etc._n etc._n etc._n caluin_n lib._n 4_o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o sect_n 1.2.3_o 4.5_o etc._n etc._n moreover_o when_o we_o do_v thus_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o
the_o romish_a church_n we_o break_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n there_o be_v no_o true_a unity_n for_o first_o of_o all_o it_o be_v not_o at_o unity_n in_o itself_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o several_a sect_n and_o rule_n which_o be_v among_o they_o one_o say_v i_o be_o of_o the_o order_n of_o s._n augustine_n a_o other_o i_o be_o of_o saint_n dominick_n his_o order_n a_o other_o i_o be_o of_o s._n francis_n a_o other_o i_o be_o a_o jesuite_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 1.11.12.13_o 1._o cor._n 1.11.12.13_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n second_o that_o church_n be_v not_o unite_v with_o god_n which_o union_n or_o unity_n be_v necessary_o join_v with_o the_o former_a 1.3_o 1._o joh._n 1.3_o as_o saint_n john_n declare_v it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a that_o it_o have_v not_o any_o union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o god_n it_o be_v sufficient_o plain_a by_o this_o only_a reason_n that_o he_o that_o have_v union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o god_n aught_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o by_o faith_n to_o be_v assure_v hereof_o that_o god_n dwell_v in_o he_o and_o he_o in_o god_n even_o as_o the_o scripture_n teach_v us._n but_o the_o faith_n of_o papist_n be_v this_o that_o we_o must_v always_o doubt_v whether_o we_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n wherefore_o they_o can_v not_o have_v union_n or_o fellowship_n with_o he_o furthermore_o this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o there_o be_v no_o union_n or_o agreement_n between_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o unite_a with_o he_o which_o be_v consider_v to_o what_o end_n and_o purpose_n will_v they_o have_v we_o to_o remain_v &_o abide_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n see_v there_o be_v not_o in_o it_o any_o unity_n i_o mean_v holy_a unity_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v well_o to_o good_a christian_n and_o the_o true_a member_n of_o jesus_n chirst_n they_o will_v object_v further_o you_o hold_v indeed_o that_o baptism_n minister_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v true_a baptism_n why_o then_o do_v you_o not_o hold_v this_o church_n for_o the_o true_a church_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o reason_n be_v very_o weak_a for_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o assembly_n of_o heretic_n for_o the_o true_a church_n although_o we_o cease_v not_o to_o allow_v the_o baptism_n minister_v amongst_o they_o for_o true_a and_o profitable_a even_o as_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n decree_v the_o same_o because_o that_o baptism_n be_v always_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o heretic_n although_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o heretic_n who_o have_v notwithstanding_o some_o vocation_n and_o allowance_n of_o the_o people_n wherein_o let_v we_o hear_v saint_n augustine_n 10._o augu._n lib._n 3_o count_n donatist_n cap._n 10._o the_o water_n say_v he_o over_o which_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v call_v upon_o be_v not_o bastardly_a for_o neither_o the_o creature_n nor_o the_o name_n be_v profane_a or_o bastardly_a wherefore_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v sanctify_v and_o hallow_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v holy_a among_o the_o adulterous_a and_o in_o the_o adulterous_a although_o they_o themselves_o be_v shameless_a and_o unclean_a and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n 6_o aug_n count_n crescent_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6_o the_o baptism_n be_v such_o as_o be_v he_o by_o who_o virtue_n it_o be_v administer_v and_o such_o as_o be_v by_o who_o hand_n it_o be_v administer_v 36._o august_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la ad_fw-la pet._n cap._n 36._o also_o because_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o what_o so_o ever_o place_n where_o baptism_n be_v administer_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o once_o minister_v this_o be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o though_o it_o be_v administer_v by_o heretic_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v reverent_o receive_v and_o at_o no_o hand_n reiterated_a wherefore_o we_o esteem_v and_o take_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o true_a baptism_n because_o it_o be_v minister_v not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o infant_n which_o receive_v it_o be_v true_o baptize_v even_o as_o they_o which_o be_v circumcise_v in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o of_o caiaphas_n be_v hold_v for_o true_a circumcise_a person_n although_o at_o that_o time_n the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v almost_o altogether_o pervert_v and_o corrupt_v but_o yet_o this_o remain_v that_o albeit_o we_o have_v receive_v baptism_n in_o the_o popish_a assembly_n and_o that_o we_o hold_v the_o same_o for_o true_a baptism_n yet_o we_o be_v far_o off_o from_o hold_v or_o account_v that_o assembly_n for_o the_o true_a church_n caluine_n have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o difficulty_n or_o doubt_n who_o word_n i_o will_v bring_v in_o place_n here_o content_v myself_o therewith_o 11.12_o caluin_n lib._n 4_o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o sect_n 11.12_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la say_v he_o there_o be_v certain_a prerogative_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n which_o remain_v amongst_o the_o jew_n although_o at_o that_o time_n the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v very_o much_o corrupt_v so_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v at_o this_o day_n some_o step_n and_o path_n of_o the_o dissipation_n or_o scatter_v of_o the_o church_n which_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v remain_v with_o they_o for_o as_o circumcision_n can_v not_o be_v so_o defile_v by_o the_o unclean_a hand_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o it_o be_v always_o a_o sign_n &_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n for_o which_o cause_n god_n call_v the_o infant_n or_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o this_o people_n his_o which_o can_v not_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n belong_v unto_o he_o but_o by_o a_o certain_a special_a blessing_n and_o privilege_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o because_o he_o have_v once_o place_v his_o covenant_n in_o france_n in_o italy_n in_o germany_n &_o other_o country_n although_o that_o all_o that_o be_v afterwards_o oppress_v by_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antechriste_n yet_o to_o the_o end_n that_o his_o covenant_n may_v remain_v amongst_o they_o inviolable_a and_o unbroken_a it_o have_v please_v he_o that_o baptism_n shall_v there_o remain_v for_o a_o testimony_n &_o witness_n of_o that_o covenant_n which_o because_o it_o be_v ordain_v &_o hallow_v by_o his_o own_o mouth_n retain_v and_o keep_v she_o own_o force_n notwithstanding_o the_o ungodliness_n of_o man_n likewise_o he_o have_v by_o his_o providence_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o there_o shall_v remain_v amongst_o they_o other_o remnant_n also_o as_o the_o lord_n prayer_n the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o commandment_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n jest_n the_o church_n shall_v utter_o perish_v and_o as_o sometime_o building_n be_v pull_v down_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o foundation_n remain_v and_o some_o show_n of_o the_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n so_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o suffer_v that_o his_o church_n shall_v be_v so_o raze_v or_o destroy_v by_o antichrist_n that_o nothing_o of_o the_o building_n shall_v remain_v and_o although_o that_o he_o may_v take_v vengeance_n of_o the_o unthankefulnes_n of_o man_n who_o despise_v his_o word_n he_o have_v suffer_v such_o a_o horrible_a shake_n and_o fall_v to_o be_v make_v yet_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n that_o some_o part_n or_o portion_n thereof_o shall_v remain_v as_o a_o sign_n token_n &_o mark_n that_o the_o whole_a be_v not_o abolish_v wherefore_o when_o we_o refuse_v simple_o to_o grant_v unto_o the_o papist_n the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o utter_o deem_v they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o any_o church_n amongst_o they_o but_o we_o only_a reason_n of_o the_o true_a and_o right_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o import_v a_o fellowship_n as_o well_o in_o the_o doctrine_n as_o in_o all_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o our_o christianity_n 2.4_o daniel_n 9.27_o 2._o thes_n 2.4_o daniel_n and_o s._n paul_n have_v foretell_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n we_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o that_o execrable_a abominable_a and_o curse_a kingdom_n at_o the_o least_o he_o be_v so_o in_o the_o west_n church_n now_o see_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o seat_n of_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n thereby_o be_v mean_v that_o his_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v such_o as_o shall_v not_o altogether_o
of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v they_o condemn_v i_o answer_v that_o we_o leave_v the_o judgement_n thereof_o unto_o god_n for_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o we_o to_o determine_v and_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v hide_v from_o we_o and_o which_o indeed_o pass_v our_o knowledge_n and_o calling_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n pronounce_v 3.18.36_o joh._n 3.18.36_o that_o they_o which_o die_v without_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v damn_v and_o we_o can_v but_o say_v amen_o and_o give_v our_o consent_n to_o this_o neither_o serve_v it_o to_o any_o purpose_n to_o allege_v ignorance_n and_o to_o say_v that_o it_o excuse_v the_o sinner_n before_o god_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a therein_o the_o servant_n say_v jesus_n christ_n that_o know_v his_o master_n will_n 48._o luke_n 12.47_o 48._o &_o prepare_v not_o himself_o neither_o do_v according_a to_o his_o will_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o many_o stripe_n but_o he_o that_o know_v it_o not_o and_o yet_o do_v commit_v thing_n worthy_a of_o stripe_n shall_v be_v beat_v with_o few_o stripe_n also_o 5.14_o math._n 5.14_o if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a they_o shall_v fall_v both_o into_o the_o ditch_n saint_n paul_n say_v also_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v without_o the_o law_n 1.6_o rom._n 2._o 12._o 2._o thes_n 1.6_o shall_v perish_v also_o without_o the_o law_n and_o as_o many_o as_o have_v sin_v within_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n and_o again_o it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o and_o to_o you_o which_o be_v trouble_v rest_n and_o deliverance_n with_o we_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v show_v himself_o from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n render_v vengeance_n unto_o they_o that_o do_v not_o know_v god_n and_o which_o obey_v not_o unto_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n etc._n etc._n these_o place_n do_v open_o enough_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o end_n of_o those_o that_o die_v without_o faith_n although_o they_o be_v ignorant_a for_o their_o ignorance_n can_v excuse_v they_o nor_o serve_v they_o for_o a_o cloak_n or_o cover_n to_o absolve_v and_o set_v they_o free_a from_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n for_o confirmation_n and_o proof_n whereof_o we_o may_v allege_v also_o and_o put_v down_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o leviticus_fw-la 4.2_o levi._n 4.2_o touch_v the_o offer_v command_v by_o god_n for_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v through_o ignorance_n loe_o what_o we_o have_v to_o say_v for_o one_o point_n but_o to_o that_o which_o remain_v touch_v our_o father_n and_o predecessor_n god_n may_v well_o show_v mercy_n upon_o they_o at_o the_o end_n of_o their_o day_n make_v himself_o know_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o secret_a virtue_n and_o power_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o put_v it_o into_o their_o heart_n to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o son_n that_o so_o they_o may_v be_v save_v for_o god_n be_v almighty_a to_o save_v his_o own_o people_n yea_o without_o use_v any_o of_o these_o mean_n which_o he_o be_v accustom_v common_o and_o ordinary_o to_o use_v to_o plant_v faith_n in_o we_o and_o to_o engrave_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n to_o our_o own_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v saint_n cyprian_n his_o answer_n 3_o cypri_n lib._n 2._o epist_n 3_o touch_v those_o that_o die_v in_o some_o false_a opinion_n if_o some_o one_o of_o our_o predecessor_n say_v he_o either_o by_o ignorance_n or_o through_o simplicity_n have_v not_o keep_v and_o hold_v that_o which_o the_o lord_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o do_v by_o his_o example_n and_o authority_n the_o mercy_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v pardon_v he_o but_o we_o can_v help_v the_o same_o be_v admonish_v and_o instruct_v by_o he_o behold_v what_o saint_n cyprian_n pronounce_v herein_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o speak_v proper_o touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a supper_n but_o nothing_o let_v but_o that_o we_o may_v apply_v his_o speech_n general_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o all_o the_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o ix_o chap._n of_o the_o degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o popish_a clergy_n and_o of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o true_a pastor_n we_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v heretofore_o 9.38_o mat._n 9.38_o that_o it_o appertain_v unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o harvest_n to_o send_v forth_o workman_n in_o to_o his_o harvest_n for_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o any_o what_o gift_n soever_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n to_o thrust_v himself_o into_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n unless_o he_o be_v lawful_o call_v thereto_o now_o the_o apostle_n saint_n paul_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n 4.11_o ephe._n 4.11_o show_v we_o what_o workman_n the_o lord_n have_v send_v into_o his_o harvest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n apostle_n apostle_n touch_v the_o apostle_n they_o be_v choose_v immediate_o from_o christ_n and_o their_o office_n be_v to_o sow_v and_o spread_v the_o gospel_n abroad_o throughout_o all_o the_o world_n neither_o have_v any_o one_o of_o they_o any_o limit_n or_o border_n set_v they_o or_o some_o certain_a church_n appoint_v to_o they_o ●_o mat._n 28.19_o mat._n 10.2_o gal._n 2._o ●_o but_o christ_n will_v that_o in_o every_o part_n or_o place_n where_o so_o ever_o they_o come_v they_o shall_v do_v their_o message_n before_o all_o people_n and_o nation_n such_o be_v the_o twelve_o name_v in_o the_o gospel_n to_o who_o saint_n paul_n be_v add_v who_o be_v special_o appoint_v to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n among_o the_o gentile_n now_o because_o this_o degree_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v by_o god_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o church_n those_o church_n be_v plant_v and_o establish_v this_o name_n of_o apostle_n ought_v not_o any_o more_o to_o be_v use_v among_o the_o minister_n as_o to_o be_v give_v and_o communicate_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o read_v that_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v general_o in_o the_o scripture_n for_o a_o pastor_n and_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o epaphroditus_n be_v call_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n &_o barnabas_n be_v name_v a_o apostle_n 14.14_o philip._n 2.25_o act._n 14.14_o act._n 14._o prophets_n be_v distinguish_v into_o two_o sort_n or_o of_o dear_n prophet_n prophet_n some_o be_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o in_o that_o time_n who_o be_v instruct_v and_o teach_v by_o a_o special_a revelation_n from_o god_n do_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v the_o other_o be_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o in_o the_o first_o place_n have_v a_o excellent_a gift_n and_o singular_a grace_n to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n 11.4_o 1._o cor._n 11.4_o also_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v endue_v etc._n 1._o cor._n 14._o 1._o etc._n etc._n with_o great_a wisdom_n and_o readiness_n well_o to_o provide_v for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o speak_v proper_o they_o be_v as_o interpreter_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o this_o rank_n or_o order_n be_v comprehend_v the_o prophet_n that_o have_v the_o gift_n to_o understand_v foresee_v and_o reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v 11.28_o act._n 11.28_o such_o a_o one_o be_v agabb_n who_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n foretell_v that_o a_o great_a famine_n shall_v fall_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n which_o also_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o emperor_n claudius_n caesar_n day_n also_o that_o saint_n paul_n shall_v be_v bind_v at_o jerusalem_n 13.1_o act._n 21.10_o etc._n etc._n act._n 13.1_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v also_o in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o act_n of_o certain_a prophet_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n to_o wit_n barnabas_n and_o simeon_n who_o be_v call_v niger_n and_o lucius_n of_o cyrene_n and_o manahen_n which_o have_v be_v bring_v up_o with_o herode_fw-la the_o tetrarch_n and_o saul_n and_o in_o the_o one_o and_o twenty_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o phillip_n four_o daughter_n which_o do_v prophesy_v 21.9_o act._n 21.9_o these_o degree_n or_o this_o office_n of_o prophet_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n to_o endure_v but_o for_o a_o time_n only_o as_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n evangelist_n evangelist_n general_o be_v those_o which_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n sometime_o also_o this_o name_n evangelist_n be_v refer_v to_o those_o four_o who_o have_v write_v the_o story_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o be_v to_o say_v s._n matthew_n s._n mark_v s._n luke_n and_o s._n john_n but_o in_o this_o order_n of_o the_o church_n the_o question_n be_v
or_o servitor_n in_o which_o sense_n s._n paul_n call_v the_o magistrate_n the_o deacon_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 15.8_o rom._n 13.4_o ephe._n 3._o 7._o rom._n 15.8_o the_o servant_n or_o minister_n of_o god_n and_o he_o name_v himself_o the_o deacon_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o also_o he_o call_v jesus_n christ_n the_o deacon_n of_o circumcision_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o minister_n thereof_o wherefore_o be_v so_o take_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o estate_n &_o call_v of_o the_o pastor_n it_o be_v common_o translate_v and_o turn_v by_o this_o word_n minister_n or_o servant_n as_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o collossian_o and_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 3.5_o colos_n 1.7_o 1._o cor._n 3.5_o but_o sometime_o it_o be_v take_v more_o strait_o for_o they_o which_o have_v a_o charge_n and_o office_n to_o gather_v the_o alm_n &_o to_o dispense_v or_o bestow_v they_o among_o the_o poor_a the_o first_o occasion_n that_o be_v give_v to_o choose_v these_o deacon_n in_o the_o church_n be_v this_o because_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o very_o well_o provide_v for_o or_o furnish_v both_o the_o charge_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o of_o distribute_v the_o good_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n be_v the_o seven_o deacon_n choose_v of_o who_o be_v speak_v acts._n 6._o 6.2_o acts._n 6.2_o and_o the_o condition_n and_o quality_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o deacon_n that_o man_n will_v choose_v be_v there_o describe_v and_o set_v out_o and_o also_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n etc._n 1._o tim._n 3.8_o etc._n etc._n these_o be_v the_o degree_n of_o the_o church_n or_o ecclesiastical_a order_n which_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o set_v up_o and_o his_o apostle_n after_o he_o establish_v for_o the_o regiment_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o order_n be_v afterward_o in_o the_o popedom_n by_o little_a and_o little_a not_o only_o corrupt_v but_o utter_o overthrow_v for_o in_o that_o tyrannous_a kingdom_n after_o that_o corruption_n have_v once_o crafty_o overtake_v or_o steal_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n they_o devise_v and_o forge_v a_o stewardship_n dispensation_n and_o bestow_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o charge_n which_o be_v altogether_o far_o off_o and_o estrange_v from_o the_o former_a simplicity_n and_o plainness_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v wherein_o first_o they_o make_v a_o sacrament_n without_o the_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n of_o the_o order_n and_o degree_n of_o minister_n afterwards_o they_o devise_v a_o certain_a kind_n of_o cream_n or_o oil_n to_o anoint_v they_o as_o they_o say_v but_o in_o deed_n it_o be_v to_o grease_n or_o smear_v they_o fetch_v that_o through_o a_o false_a zeal_n from_o aaron_n and_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o old_a time_n under_o the_o law_n and_o also_o shave_v or_o shear_v special_o of_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n against_o the_o custom_n both_o of_o the_o apostle_n 18.18_o act._n 18.18_o and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v true_a in_o deed_n that_o saint_n paul_n do_v once_o cause_v his_o head_n to_o be_v shear_v in_o cenchrea_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o it_o be_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o vow_n which_o he_o have_v make_v and_o not_o that_o he_o be_v then_o ordain_v into_o some_o ministry_n but_o a_o great_a while_n after_o his_o call_n and_o in_o that_o he_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v shear_v he_o do_v it_o not_o for_o any_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o apply_v himself_o thereby_o to_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v as_o yet_o very_o rude_a &_o not_o well_o instruct_v as_o he_o himself_o protest_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n 9.20_o 1._o cor._n 9.20_o that_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n &_o willing_o he_o become_v under_o the_o law_n although_o he_o be_v deliver_v there_o from_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v win_v the_o jew_n church_n order_n of_o the_o romishe_a church_n next_o they_o establish_v or_o make_v seven_o order_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o porter_n or_o door_n keeper_n the_o second_o reader_n the_o third_o exorcist_n or_o in_o plain_a english_a conjurer_n who_o as_o they_o feign_v have_v power_n give_v they_o to_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o mad_a man_n and_o man_n possess_v with_o devil_n and_o to_o heal_v they_o the_o four_o acoluthe_n that_o be_v to_o say_v follower_n who_o wait_v upon_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o household_n service_n and_o do_v continual_o accompany_v he_o first_o for_o honour_n sake_n and_o then_o that_o no_o suspicion_n shall_v arise_v of_o they_o the_o five_o subdeacons_n or_o underdeacons_n the_o sixth_o deacon_n and_o the_o seven_o priest_n of_o which_o last_o sort_n they_o have_v make_v many_o degree_n whereof_o they_o call_v some_o simple_a or_o single_a chaplain_n other_o curate_n and_o vicar_n other_o bishop_n other_o archbishop_n or_o metropolitanes_n other_o some_o cardinal_n and_o afterward_o they_o come_v to_o the_o four_o patriarch_n and_o last_o to_o the_o pope_n himself_o but_o from_o whence_o come_v this_o goodly_a hierarchy_n or_o order_n of_o pristes_fw-fr who_o have_v establish_v it_o and_o set_v it_o in_o nature_n or_o be_v do_v jesus_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n thereof_o but_o let_v we_o discourse_v a_o little_a upon_o the_o fountain_n and_o beginning_n of_o these_o goodly_a degree_n i_o say_v and_o mean_v only_o of_o those_o which_o they_o contain_v under_o the_o name_n priest_n for_o the_o other_o keep_v not_o the_o place_n of_o true_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o these_o will_v seem_v to_o do_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o that_o will_v hear_v speech_n thereof_o 11._o theo._n beza_n lib._n confess_v punct_a 7._o ca._n 11._o let_v he_o read_v the_o confession_n of_o theodorus_n beza_n as_o concern_v chaplain_n durandus_fw-la in_o his_o book_n call_v rationale_n divinorum_fw-la offic_n allege_v two_o reason_n to_o show_v why_o priest_n be_v so_o call_v the_o one_o be_v because_o the_o king_n of_o france_n in_o time_n heretofore_o when_o they_o go_v to_o war_n be_v wont_a to_o carry_v with_o they_o saint_z martins_z cap_n or_o hood_n which_o they_o keep_v under_o a_o tent_n which_o of_o the_o cap_n keep_v in_o it_o be_v name_v capella_n that_o be_v chapel_n and_o the_o clerk_n or_o priest_n that_o have_v the_o keep_n of_o this_o chapel_n be_v call_v chaplain_n and_o afterwards_o in_o continuance_n of_o time_n this_o name_n be_v in_o some_o country_n give_v general_o to_o all_o priest_n and_o these_o little_a cabbine_n or_o corner_n or_o rather_o high_a place_n which_o be_v in_o the_o popish_a temple_n wherein_o the_o chaplain_n say_v their_o mass_n be_v call_v chapel_n the_o other_o reason_n be_v that_o when_o in_o old_a time_n there_o be_v set_v out_o a_o army_n or_o to_o do_v some_o exploit_n by_o soldier_n they_o have_v in_o the_o camp_n certain_a special_a tent_n to_o say_v mass_n in_o which_o tent_n be_v cover_v over_o with_o goat_n skine_n now_o a_o goat_n in_o latin_a be_v call_v capra_n or_o capella_n that_o be_v to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o porteous_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v at_o this_o day_n chapel_n wherefore_o because_o these_o tent_n be_v cover_v with_o goat_n skin_n they_o be_v name_v chappelles_n and_o the_o priest_n which_o have_v the_o keep_n of_o they_o and_o who_o do_v therein_o sing_v their_o mass_n be_v call_v chaplain_n behold_v very_o two_o reason_n to_o show_v from_o whence_o this_o name_n chaplain_n be_v take_v which_o reason_n be_v very_o high_a &_o full_a of_o great_a speculation_n or_o insight_n contain_v very_o great_a mystery_n and_o such_o as_o be_v marvellous_o deep_a but_o we_o leave_v they_o to_o be_v meditate_a or_o look_v into_o diligent_o to_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v the_o pope_n chaplain_n to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o shall_v advise_v and_o take_v counsel_n to_o see_v whether_o they_o can_v be_v willing_a that_o their_o reverend_a name_n shall_v be_v fetch_v and_o draw_v from_o these_o base_a beginning_n curate_n curate_n curate_n have_v another_o fountain_n in_o old_a time_n according_a to_o the_o order_n establish_v by_o jesus_n christ_n the_o pastor_n be_v ordain_v &_o place_v distinct_o and_o without_o confusion_n in_o several_a church_n for_o to_o the_o end_n that_o every_o pastor_n may_v know_v his_o own_o charge_n and_o be_v able_a to_o yield_v a_o better_a account_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o that_o one_o shall_v not_o any_o whit_n at_o all_o encroach_v upon_o or_o intermeddle_v with_o other_o also_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o flock_n and_o sheep_n may_v know_v where_o they_o may_v seek_v for_o and_o find_v their_o own_o pastor_n they_o
similitude_n jesus_n christ_n very_o plain_o express_v what_o shall_v be_v the_o visible_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n so_o long_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v on_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o wicked_a shall_v continual_o be_v mingle_v therein_o with_o the_o good_a and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o the_o tare_n be_v amongst_o the_o good_a wheat_n in_o the_o field_n and_o as_o evil_a fish_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o good_a in_o the_o sea_n whereof_o follow_v that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n to_o wit_n that_o all_o they_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o for_o all_o that_o of_o the_o church_n and_o indeed_o experience_n have_v in_o all_o age_n show_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o and_o make_v we_o to_o behold_v the_o same_o as_o yet_o even_o every_o day_n &c_n gen._n 4._o 3._o &c_n &c_n cain_n be_v the_o first_o that_o defile_v the_o church_n of_o god_n although_o he_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o outward_a show_n as_o his_o just_a brother_n abel_n do_v noah_n preach_v unto_o those_o of_o his_o time_n and_o continue_v his_o exercise_n a_o long_a season_n some_o think_v six_o score_n year_n hardly_o will_v his_o own_o household_n believe_v his_o word_n &c_n gen._n 7.1_o &c_n &c_n so_o that_o god_n destroy_v all_o the_o world_n by_o the_o flood_n only_o eight_o person_n of_o the_o foresay_a noah_n household_n be_v reserve_v by_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o ark_n and_o even_o yet_o of_o those_o eight_o person_n with_o who_o god_n have_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n touch_v the_o establish_n again_o of_o his_o church_n ham_n 9.22_o gen._n 9.22_o in_o his_o time_n very_o manifest_o declare_v his_o hypocrisy_n among_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n 19_o mat._n 27._o 3._o etc._n etc._n act._n 1.16_o 17._o etc._n etc._n reve._n 2.6_o clemens_n storm_n lib._n 3._o euseb_n hist_o eccles_n lib._n 3_o cap._n 29._o 1._o john_n 2._o 19_o judas_n be_v find_v a_o traitor_n and_o unfaithful_a amongst_o the_o seven_o deacon_n one_o nicholas_n be_v a_o heretic_n at_o the_o least_o if_o that_o be_v true_a that_o this_o nicholas_n be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n as_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o eusebius_n certain_o affirm_v it_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o antichristes_n wherewith_o the_o church_n be_v in_o his_o time_n trouble_v and_o torment_v say_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n and_o what_o at_o this_o day_n how_o many_o hypocrite_n and_o great_a mongrel_n mastiff_n be_v find_v at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o outward_a church_n and_o be_v suffer_v therein_o certain_o there_o be_v very_o many_o which_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o allow_v for_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o who_o god_n who_o behold_v all_o man_n heart_n do_v in_o the_o mean_a season_n judge_v otherwise_o wherefore_o the_o church_n even_o in_o this_o respect_n be_v not_o at_o any_o time_n in_o the_o world_n without_o wrinkle_n the_o four_o point_n which_o we_o must_v note_v here_o be_v that_o our_o sanctification_n be_v not_o perform_v or_o wrought_v all_o at_o one_o time_n but_o there_o be_v three_o degree_n or_o step_n thereof_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v perfect_a the_o first_o degree_n be_v during_o this_o life_n when_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n give_v we_o his_o holy_a spirit_n thereby_o to_o resist_v and_o withstand_v the_o world_n the_o devil_n sin_n and_o our_o own_o flesh_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v love_v good_a thing_n &c_n rom._n 7.22_o 23._o &c_n &c_n and_o hate_v evil_a hereunto_o may_v be_v apply_v that_o which_o saint_n paul_n speak_v of_o himself_o write_v unto_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o seven_o chapter_n verse_n 22.23_o the_o second_o be_v after_o this_o life_n when_o the_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n give_v itself_o unto_o all_o holiness_n but_o our_o other_o part_n that_o be_v the_o body_n rest_a itself_o in_o the_o dust_n without_o be_v able_a to_o apply_v itself_o unto_o any_o thing_n to_o sanctify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n by_o the_o three_o shall_v be_v after_o the_o last_o judgement_n when_o be_v perfect_o join_v with_o jesus_n christ_n our_o head_n we_o shall_v behold_v god_n even_o as_o he_o be_v who_o shall_v be_v all_o in_o all_o and_o that_o after_o such_o manner_n and_o sort_n as_o s._n paul_n say_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v of_o god_n unto_o we_o wisdom_n 30_o 1_o cor._n 1._o 30_o righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n therefore_o when_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v so_o work_v in_o we_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o spot_n 3.2_o philip._n 3._o 21._o 1._o joh._n 3.2_o but_o that_o our_o very_a body_n shall_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v like_a unto_o he_o then_o true_o shall_v our_o sanctification_n be_v accomplish_v and_o make_v perfect_a which_o now_o be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v begin_v in_o us._n chap_n xii_o whether_o the_o church_n may_v err_v or_o no._n this_o question_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o church_n can_v err_v have_v be_v diverse_a time_n toss_v and_o handle_v for_o the_o open_n and_o unfolding_n whereof_o we_o must_v first_o strive_v to_o know_v after_o what_o manner_n or_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o word_n church_n be_v here_o to_o be_v take_v i_o mean_v whether_o we_o must_v understand_v this_o of_o the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n or_o else_o of_o the_o particular_a church_n but_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o we_o all_o agree_v herein_o that_o she_o can_v err_v as_o touch_v faith_n and_o indeed_o how_o shall_v she_o err_v see_v that_o follow_a jesus_n christ_n her_o head_n and_o her_o husband_n she_o walk_v not_o in_o darkness_n but_o in_o the_o light_n of_o life_n on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o all_o faithful_a people_n universal_o even_o from_o the_o first_o unto_o the_o last_o shall_v fall_v into_o error_n for_o there_o have_v be_v always_o some_o preserve_v through_o the_o goodness_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o who_o truth_n itself_o through_o other_o man_n naughtiness_n bring_v as_o it_o be_v to_o nothing_o or_o at_o the_o least_o destituted_a and_o forsake_v have_v yet_o notwithstanding_o be_v restore_v to_o her_o former_a force_n and_o be_v yet_o still_o maintain_v and_o preserve_v wherefore_o this_o question_n be_v touch_v a_o particular_a church_n touch_v which_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o hear_v the_o judgement_n and_o reason_n of_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n upon_o this_o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n so_o take_v can_v err_v follow_v herein_o the_o novatians_n donatist_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o afterwards_o we_o will_v show_v forth_o &_o put_v down_o our_o advice_n and_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o romishe_a catholic_n think_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v although_o she_o do_v and_o appoint_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n she_o may_v go_v and_o walk_v without_o the_o order_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o word_n and_o although_o she_o go_v and_o walk_v yet_o she_o can_v err_v or_o go_v astray_o but_o they_o separate_v that_o which_o ought_v always_o to_o remain_v &_o abide_v join_v together_o for_o if_o the_o church_n follow_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v she_o from_o error_n as_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o she_o follow_v it_o therein_o she_o do_v well_o and_o can_v err_v the_o reason_n whereby_o they_o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v be_v these_o follow_v the_o first_o be_v this_o jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o at_o any_o time_n forsake_v his_o church_n which_o be_v his_o spouse_n or_o wife_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o can_v err_v i_o answer_v by_o a_o distinction_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o church_n follow_v jesus_n christ_n it_o can_v be_v forsake_v of_o he_o and_o can_v err_v but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o live_v in_o the_o world_n do_v stray_v from_o christ_n and_o go_v aside_o from_o god_n commandment_n it_o be_v forsake_v of_o he_o and_o do_v err_v the_o second_o reason_n the_o church_n be_v call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 3.15_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o wherefore_o it_o can_v err_v i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o argument_n a_o double_a error_n the_o one_o touch_v the_o word_n church_n for_o saint_n paul_n mean_v the_o catholic_a church_n &_o not_o any_o particular_a one_o the_o other_o be_v concern_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o call_v the_o church_n the_o pillar_n
9.10_o isaiah_n 8._o for_o 10.11.13.16_o isaiah_n 26._o for_o 10.11_o isaiah_n 28._o for_o 9.12.13_o isaiah_n 30._o for_o 9.15_o isaiah_n 42._o for_o 19.20_o isaiah_n 48._o for_o 4._o isaiah_n 65._o ver_fw-la 11._o jeremiah_n 2._o jeremi_n jeremi_n for_o 24.29_o unto_o the_o 33._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 5._o for_o 3._o unto_o the_o 8._o ver_fw-la and_o ver_fw-la 20._o of_o the_o same_o chap._n unto_o ver_fw-la 25._o jeremiah_n 6._o ver_fw-la 10._o in_o every_o verse_n almost_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n jeremiah_n 7._o for_o 24._o unto_o the_o 28._o ver_fw-la jeremiah_n 8._o for_o 4._o unto_o ver_fw-la 8._o jeremiah_n 17._o for_o 1.23_o jeremiah_n 10._o for_o 11.15_o jeremiah_n 25._o for_o 4.8_o jeremiah_n 29._o for_o 17.20_o jeremiah_n 35._o for_o 13.16_o jeremiah_n 43._o for_o 2._o jeremiah_n 44._o for_o 7.10.11.16.20_o ezechiel_n 2._o ezechi_n ezechi_n for_o 3._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n ezechiel_n 3._o for_o 5.10.26.27_o ezechiel_n 4._o ver_fw-la 3._o hosea_n hosea_n ezechiel_n 12._o for_o 2._o hosea_n 4._o througout_n the_o whole_a chapter_n hosea_n 5._o for_o 4._o amos_n 4._o matthew_n amos._n zephaniah_n zachariah_n proverb_n matthew_n for_o 6._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n zephaniah_n 3._o for_o 5._o zechariah_n 7._o for_o 11._o unto_o the_o end_n proverb_n 1._o ve_fw-la 24._o unto_o the_o end_n matth_n 11._o for_o 16.17.21_o and_o so_o unto_o the_o 25._o ver_fw-la matth._n 12._o ver_fw-la 41.42_o mat._n 23._o ver_fw-la 37._o touch_v the_o pastor_n special_o and_o particular_o see_v isaiah_n 56._o for_o 10.11_o jeremiah_n 6._o for_o 13._o jeremiah_n 14._o ver_fw-la 14._o jeremiah_n 23._o ver_fw-la 1.2_o etc._n etc._n ezechiel_n 22._o for_o 25.26.28_o ezechiel_n 34._o for_o 23.4_o etc._n etc._n hosea_n 9_o for_o 8._o 1._o king_n 22._o ver_fw-la 6._o john_n 7._o for_o 47._o chap._n xiii_o whether_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v of_o the_o judgement_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n indeed_o have_v a_o very_a great_a authority_n among_o man_n in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o behove_v we_o to_o hear_v the_o same_o if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v account_v rebel_n against_o god_n yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v she_o be_v the_o wife_n and_o scholar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n she_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o as_o unto_o her_o husband_n head_n and_o teacher_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v a_o article_n which_o we_o must_v hold_v inviolable_a and_o without_o breach_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o depend_v and_o hang_v on_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n and_o to_o have_v her_o authority_n from_o the_o same_o word_n and_o not_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n shall_v depend_v and_o have_v the_o credit_n and_o authority_n thereof_o from_o the_o church_n notwithstanding_o many_o be_v find_v which_o hold_n altogether_o the_o contrary_a set_v as_o we_o say_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n and_o plow_v or_o wain_n before_o the_o ox_n and_o utter_o overthrow_v all_o order_n for_o they_o suppose_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v no_o more_o certainty_n &_o authority_n than_o it_o please_v the_o church_n that_o by_o her_o allowance_n and_o consent_n it_o shall_v have_v and_o these_o be_v the_o romishe_a catholic_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n after_o this_o manner_n give_v it_o authority_n over_o and_o above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o make_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o whatsoeur_fw-fr it_o decree_v determine_v and_o conclude_v we_o must_v hold_v her_o judgement_n sentence_n and_o resolution_n as_o a_o certain_a oracle_n come_v from_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v short_a as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o belief_n and_o behold_v their_o reason_n for_o this_o the_o first_o reason_n the_o church_n by_o her_o judgement_n have_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v be_v acknowledge_v for_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o have_v distinguish_v separate_v and_o sunder_v it_o from_o all_o other_o write_n what_o so_o ever_o which_o man_n have_v publish_v &_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n for_o who_o be_v it_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o church_n alone_o and_o who_o be_v it_o that_o even_o to_o this_o day_n can_v certify_v and_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n be_v come_v safe_a sound_a and_o whole_a even_o unto_o our_o age_n but_o only_o the_o same_o church_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n and_o certainty_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v two_o thing_n or_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o that_o this_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a opinion_n to_o say_v that_o without_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a witness_n to_o commend_v and_o set_v forth_o the_o authority_n and_o credit_n thereof_o unto_o us._n let_v we_o hear_v what_o saint_n augustine_n say_v hereof_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o truth_n say_v he_o be_v fruitful_a and_o plentiful_a 1._o augu._n de_fw-fr assumpt_n virg._n mart._n cap._n 1._o and_o if_o she_o be_v diligent_o examine_v man_n shall_v find_v that_o of_o herself_o she_o make_v herself_o to_o be_v sufficient_o know_v wherefore_o alfonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n have_v sometime_o say_v haereses_fw-la alfonsus_n de_fw-fr cast_n li._n 1._o ca._n 8._o cont_n haereses_fw-la see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v come_v forth_o from_o god_n it_o have_v of_o itself_o already_o deserve_v that_o we_o shall_v give_v trust_n unto_o it_o and_o believe_v it_o and_o when_o the_o church_n publish_v this_o that_o it_o be_v give_v by_o god_n she_o do_v whole_o even_o as_o a_o witness_n which_o bear_v witness_n to_o some_o thing_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v certain_a not_o because_o of_o the_o witness_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o itself_o and_o the_o credit_n it_o have_v and_o not_o because_o the_o church_n receive_v it_o and_o publish_v it_o but_o because_o that_o god_n have_v give_v it_o and_o make_v the_o same_o manifest_a unto_o us._n beside_o be_v this_o a_o small_a matter_n that_o we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v his_o peculiar_a office_n to_o guide_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o all_o truth_n 2.27_o john_n 16.13_o 1._o joh._n 2.27_o and_o to_o teach_v we_o all_o thing_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o he_o teach_v we_o this_o truth_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o god_n and_o from_o he_o it_o be_v say_v moreover_o that_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2.12_o 1._o cor._n 2.12_o that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o of_o god_n also_o 2.14_o 1._o cor._n 2.14_o that_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v spiritual_o discern_v that_o be_v to_o say_v by_z the_o efficacy_n move_v and_o work_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n teach_v we_o and_o make_v we_o to_o discern_v between_o these_o book_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o receive_v without_o gainsay_v and_o the_o other_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o reject_v and_o refuse_v some_o perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o this_o article_n or_o point_n be_v dangerous_a because_o that_o heretic_n oftentimes_o brag_v that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v not_o indeed_o and_o we_o know_v how_o they_o have_v always_o endeavour_v to_o make_v their_o doctrine_n of_o authority_n and_o credit_n through_o their_o inward_a revelation_n which_o they_o have_v imagine_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o we_o can_v easy_o answer_v this_o to_o wit_n that_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o can_v easy_o avoid_v all_o danger_n if_o we_o use_v and_o follow_v the_o remedy_n which_o s._n john_n do_v furnish_v we_o withal_o when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v every_o spirit_n 1._o 1_o joh._n 4._o 1._o but_o to_o try_v and_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no._n and_o what_o shall_v be_v the_o mean_a and_o way_n of_o this_o trial_n and_o examination_n even_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o we_o see_v that_o thereby_o the_o man_n of_o berea_n 17.11_o act._n 17.11_o do_v prove_v s._n paul_n his_o spirit_n and_o doctrine_n and_o to_o this_o mean_a do_v chrysostome_n send_v we_o when_o he_o say_v thus_o many_o boast_n of_o the_o spirit_n spirit_n chrysost_n de_fw-fr sanct_n &_o adorand_n spirit_n but_o they_o which_o bring_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o do_v false_o pretend_v the_o same_o as_o christ_n witness_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o himself_o because_o that_o his_o doctrine_n
be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n in_o like_a manner_n if_o any_o under_o the_o title_n and_o name_n of_o the_o spirit_n shall_v bring_v unto_o we_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n let_v we_o not_o believe_v it_o for_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o accomplishment_n and_o fulfil_v of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n so_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o how_o can_v we_o by_o this_o way_n or_o mean_v discern_v and_o know_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o shall_v propound_v and_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o no_o after_o two_o sort_n or_o by_o two_o mean_n you_o shall_v know_v this_o first_o if_o it_o tend_v to_o this_o end_n to_o exalt_v establish_v and_o set_v up_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v 7.18_o joh._n 7.18_o he_o that_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n be_v true_a and_o no_o unrighteousness_n be_v in_o he_o second_o if_o it_o be_v conformable_a and_o agreeable_a 12.6_o rom._n 12.6_o to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o it_o agree_v and_o accord_v well_o with_o the_o head_n &_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v more_o large_o heretofore_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n the_o second_o thing_n that_o i_o answer_v touch_v the_o foresay_a reason_n of_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n be_v that_o the_o consequence_n thereof_o be_v not_o necessary_a neither_o well_o ground_v when_o they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n yield_v testimony_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v commend_v the_o same_o unto_o we_o that_o therefore_o the_o certainty_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o we_o have_v but_o a_o little_a while_n ago_o allege_v out_o of_o alfonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v certain_a not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n which_o bear_v witness_n thereof_o but_o because_o of_o itself_o and_o his_o own_o credit_n the_o apostle_n yield_v testimony_n and_o bare_a witness_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1.8_o john_n 15.17_o acts._n 1.8_o and_o who_o be_v he_o that_o will_v therefore_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n his_o authority_n do_v depend_v of_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o goldsmith_n tri_v the_o gold_n and_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o pure_a and_o that_o which_o be_v naughty_a mettle_n but_o do_v he_o therefore_o by_o his_o trial_n and_o proof_n make_v that_o the_o gold_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n a_o parliament_n receive_v some_o edict_n or_o law_n which_o come_v from_o the_o king_n that_o it_o may_v be_v publish_v and_o proclaim_v inquirie_n be_v diligent_o make_v whether_o it_o come_v from_o the_o king_n or_o no_o afterwards_o all_o know_v that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o king_n what_o do_v the_o parliament_n then_o it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o allow_v the_o edict_n that_o it_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o that_o it_o bear_v witness_v to_o it_o and_o commend_v and_o set_v out_o the_o same_o yea_o and_o if_o need_v be_v interprete_v it_o according_a to_o the_o king_n intent_n and_o meaning_n but_o do_v the_o parliament_n for_o all_o this_o cause_v it_o or_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o king_n law_n do_v it_o give_v authority_n to_o it_o have_v it_o any_o authority_n to_o change_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o or_o to_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o it_o or_o to_o clip_v or_o take_v any_o thing_n what_o so_o ever_o away_o from_o it_o it_o be_v certain_a no._n even_o so_o stand_v the_o case_n with_o the_o church_n for_o although_o it_o be_v a_o excellent_a testimony_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o can_v at_o any_o hand_n give_v it_o authority_n as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n hang_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o when_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v and_o allow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v put_v a_o difference_n between_o it_o &_o the_o doctrine_n and_o invention_n of_o man_n she_o do_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o her_o pastor_n &_o discern_v &_o know_v it_o from_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n 10.5_o joh._n 10.5_o now_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o discern_v the_o pastor_n voice_n from_o a_o stranger_n and_o add_v authority_n and_o credit_n thereto_o bring_v to_o pass_v and_o that_o according_a to_o truth_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v such_o or_o such_o that_o be_v either_o true_a or_o false_a the_o second_o reason_n be_v the_o church_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o scripture_n for_o in_o the_o time_n of_o adam_n abel_n seth_n noah_n abraham_n isaac_n jaacob_n there_o be_v no_o scripture_n for_o moses_n be_v the_o first_o penman_n or_o writer_n of_o matter_n concern_v religion_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v a_o church_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n first_o and_o foremost_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v none_o at_o al._n for_o grant_v it_o that_o one_o thing_n be_v more_o ancient_a and_o old_a than_o another_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o for_o all_o that_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v of_o great_a authority_n and_o credit_n otherwise_o we_o must_v infer_v that_o moses_n have_v more_o authority_n than_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o law_n more_o than_o the_o gospel_n second_o as_o touch_v the_o antecedent_n or_o former_a proposition_n i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v sophistical_a captious_a and_o full_a of_o deceit_n for_o albeit_o that_o in_o these_o first_o time_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v no_o scripture_n which_o the_o father_n be_v use_v yet_o for_o all_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v because_o it_o be_v write_v and_o engrave_v in_o the_o father_n heart_n and_o moreover_o found_v very_o clear_o in_o the_o church_n which_o word_n be_v in_o good_a time_n bring_v and_o commit_v to_o writing_n first_o by_o moses_n and_o afterward_o by_o other_o and_o thereupon_o call_v the_o holy_a scripture_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o god_n word_n be_v nothing_o but_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n it_o follow_v very_o well_o that_o if_o our_o first_o father_n have_v have_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o have_v have_v also_o in_o substance_n the_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o aug._n count_n epist_n fundamen_fw-la cap._n 5._o the_o three_o reason_n s._n augustine_n have_v say_v i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o thereto_o wherefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o gospel_n take_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o consequence_n be_v stark_o naught_o for_o that_o which_o s._n augustin_n speak_v to_o one_o purpose_n or_o in_o one_o respect_n be_v apply_v to_o another_o end_n this_o holy_a doctor_n speak_v so_o as_o have_v regard_n to_o that_o he_o be_v then_o when_o he_o take_v the_o part_n of_o the_o manichee_n and_o as_o it_o be_v dispute_v against_o they_o now_o the_o manichee_n will_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o manicheus_fw-la their_o author_n which_o they_o call_v fundamental_a contain_v in_o it_o all_o their_o false_a opinion_n shall_v be_v of_o like_a and_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o apostle_n epistle_n beside_o they_o allow_v one_o part_n of_o the_o gospel_n &_o disallow_v a_o other_o &_o that_o not_o by_o the_o advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o their_o own_o proper_a and_o particular_a authority_n s._n augustine_n have_v take_v in_o hand_n to_o confute_v the_o say_a epistle_n in_o the_o beginning_n speak_v thus_o the_o epistle_n begin_v after_o this_o manner_n manicheus_fw-la the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o providence_n and_o appointment_n of_o god_n the_o father_n i_o ask_v who_o be_v this_o manicheus_fw-la you_o will_v answer_v the_o apostle_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o what_o will_v thou_o say_v thereto_o perhaps_o thou_o will_v bring_v forth_o the_o gospel_n and_o thereby_o thou_o will_v lift_v up_o and_o establish_v the_o person_n of_o manicheus_fw-la but_o what_o if_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o a_o man_n who_o do_v not_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n what_o will_v thou_o do_v when_o he_o shall_v say_v unto_o thou_o i_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n for_o as_o touch_v myself_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o move_v i_o thereto_o behold_v saint_n augustine_n word_n by_o which_o it_o be_v altogether_o
manifest_a that_o he_o mind_v not_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o gospel_n hang_v upon_o the_o allowance_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o that_o the_o church_n have_v great_a weight_n to_o induce_v and_o move_v the_o miscreant_n and_o unbeliever_n to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n this_o holy_a doctor_n than_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o faith_n but_o of_o the_o beginning_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o occasion_n and_o outward_a mean_n by_o which_o he_o be_v provoke_v &_o stir_v up_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n when_o he_o be_v a_o manichean_a heretic_n and_o not_o as_o yet_o a_o christian_a to_o wit_n because_o he_o see_v the_o good_a accord_n consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o receive_v the_o gospel_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n he_o confess_v that_o in_o former_a time_n he_o maintain_v the_o manichee_n part_n and_o that_o he_o be_v very_o eager_a and_o sharp_a therein_o and_o blind_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o sect_n now_o he_o speak_v thus_o how_o will_v thou_o prove_v that_o manicheus_fw-la be_v a_o apostle_n of_o christ_n shall_v this_o be_v by_o the_o gospel_n but_o if_o some_o one_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n will_v say_v unto_o thou_o i_o believe_v not_o the_o gospel_n what_o have_v thou_o to_o reply_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v will_v thou_o not_o purpose_n put_v down_o and_o show_v unto_o he_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o touch_v myself_o in_o the_o time_n that_o i_o be_v a_o manichean_a i_o have_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v not_o drive_v i_o thereto_o as_o if_o again_o he_o shall_v say_v for_o as_o concern_v myself_o when_o i_o be_v of_o your_o faction_n and_o sect_n i_o be_v so_o settle_v &_o stay_v in_o your_o opinion_n and_o have_v hard_o they_o so_o attentive_o and_o diligent_o yea_o i_o believe_v they_o so_o steadfast_o and_o do_v maintain_v they_o with_o such_o courage_n and_o stomach_n this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n that_o very_o hardly_o i_o have_v ever_o forsake_v and_o renounce_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n if_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o induce_v move_v and_o provoke_v i_o thereto_o the_o four_o reason_n he_o that_o have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o or_o to_o change_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v also_o authority_n over_o it_o but_o so_o it_o be_v that_z the_o church_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o or_o to_o change_v something_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n over_o and_o above_o it_o they_o thus_o prove_v the_o assumption_n which_o be_v the_o second_o proposition_n or_o sentence_n of_o the_o reason_n saint_n peter_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n to_o take_v away_o and_o to_o change_v some_o thing_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n prescribe_v by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v to_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n 28.19_o mat._n 28.19_o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n saint_z peter_n change_v this_o form_n have_v enjoin_v and_o command_v man_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o 2.38_o act._n 2.38_o as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n verse_n 38._o now_o if_o saint_n peter_n have_v have_v this_o authority_n and_o this_o power_n why_o also_o shall_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v it_o as_o well_o as_o he_o i_o answer_v first_o for_o the_o consequence_n that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o good_a for_o who_o be_v he_o that_o will_v yield_v to_o this_o that_o all_o that_o which_o be_v in_o former_a time_n permit_v to_o the_o apostle_n shall_v now_o be_v permit_v to_o the_o pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v their_o successor_n second_o i_o say_v that_o that_o which_o be_v take_v from_o saint_n peter_n as_o true_a and_o right_a be_v false_a for_o saint_n peter_n do_v in_o no_o case_n change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o act_n before_o allege_v it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o they_o must_v be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n only_o 3._o act._n 2.38_o p●●●us_n lomb●●●_n job_n 4._o d●●_n 3_o sect_n b._n &_o 〈◊〉_d de_fw-mi cosecrat_fw-mi d●●t_fw-la 4_o ●●●in_a synod_n etc._n etc._n act._n 8.12_o act._n 10.48_o ambr._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d sanct_n cap._n 3._o but_o simple_o say_v thus_o and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o peter_n lombard_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n expound_v this_o place_n if_o any_o say_v he_o be_v baptize_v without_o invocation_n of_o the_o trinity_n he_o be_v not_o a_o perfect_a christian_n unless_o he_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o under_o this_o name_n as_o s._n ambrose_n expound_v it_o be_v understand_v the_o whole_a trinity_n for_o when_o a_o man_n name_v christ_n these_o be_v understand_v to_o wit_n the_o father_n of_o who_o the_o son_n be_v anoint_v and_o the_o son_n which_o be_v anoint_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o or_o with_o who_o he_o be_v anoint_v behold_v the_o advice_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n who_o do_v not_o altogether_o satisfy_v we_o though_o he_o speak_v much_o for_o us._n for_o whether_o we_o regard_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o else_o the_o form_n thereof_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o lord_n ordinance_n ought_v to_o be_v retain_v and_o follow_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o through_o the_o whole_a and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o any_o particular_a person_n no_o not_o to_o the_o church_n itself_o to_o alter_v or_o change_v any_o thing_n therein_o and_o in_o deed_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v saint_n peter_n do_v not_o change_v the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o mark_v this_o his_o intent_n &_o purpose_n be_v to_o teach_v that_o the_o foundation_n accomplishment_n and_o fulfil_n of_o baptism_n be_v in_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o for_o to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v and_o use_v by_o s._n peter_n for_o to_o be_v receive_v to_o grace_n and_o favour_n in_o baptism_n by_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n which_o saint_n peter_n use_v be_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n but_o only_o declare_v that_o all_o the_o virtue_n power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o baptism_n consist_v only_o in_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o because_o that_o all_o that_o which_o baptism_n do_v represent_v and_o figure_n unto_o we_o 6.4_o 1._o joh._n 1.7_o rom._n 6.4_o be_v comprehend_v in_o he_o alone_o for_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v wash_v and_o purge_v from_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o by_o baptism_n bury_v with_o he_o to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o he_o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n so_o we_o also_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n the_o five_o reason_n the_o church_n have_v change_v the_o sabbath_n to_o the_o lord_n day_n or_o that_o which_o we_o call_v sunday_n although_o that_o god_n by_o express_a writing_n command_v the_o observation_n and_o keep_n of_o the_o say_a sabbath_n wherefore_o them_z it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o answer_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o the_o church_n have_v change_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o commandment_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabaoth_n in_o or_o concern_v the_o substance_n thereof_o but_o only_o in_o or_o concern_v the_o circumstance_n for_o the_o thing_n or_o matter_n abide_v always_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o commandment_n see_v that_o one_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v reserve_v to_o be_v employ_v and_o bestow_v upon_o the_o holy_a rest_n which_o thing_n be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o commandment_n as_o be_v indeed_o the_o verity_n and_o truth_n thereof_o so_o that_o the_o observation_n and_o keep_v thereof_o be_v only_o change_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o time_n which_o change_n do_v not_o derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o commandment_n &_o neither_o alter_v nor_o change_v any_o thing_n therein_o of_o that_o which_o god_n mind_v to_o commend_v
say_n note_v he_o by_o a_o letter_n and_o have_v no_o company_n with_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v ashamed_a also_o speak_v of_o the_o incestuous_a person_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 5._o 5._o i_o have_v determine_v say_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n these_o three_o end_n be_v very_o large_o lay_v out_o and_o at_o length_n discourse_v upon_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o m._n caluines_n institution_n cap._n 12._o sect._n 5._o 5._o calu._n lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 12._o sect_n 5._o whereof_o the_o sum_n be_v that_o in_o correction_n and_o censure_n man_n must_v regard_v and_o look_v to_o three_o end_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n the_o five_o consideration_n be_v that_o man_n in_o the_o reprehension_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n look_v well_o to_o this_o that_o they_o have_v not_o such_o consideration_n regard_n or_o respect_n to_o the_o outward_a appearance_n and_o show_n of_o man_n person_n that_o they_o tread_v the_o little_a one_o or_o poor_a people_n under_o their_o foot_n and_o support_v aid_n and_o hearten_v the_o great_a and_o rich_a 3.28_o deut._n 10._o 17._o gala._n 3.28_o for_o as_o god_n accept_v no_o man_n person_n and_o in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o graecian_n bond_n nor_o free_a male_a nor_o female_a but_o all_o be_v one_o in_o jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v always_o to_o walk_v with_o a_o upright_o and_o equal_a foot_n without_o turn_v aside_o any_o manner_n of_o way_n in_o receive_v and_o allow_v some_o and_o in_o refuse_v and_o disallow_v other_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o correction_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v temper_v measure_a and_o accompany_v with_o gentleness_n softness_n and_o courtesy_n to_o the_o end_n as_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o he_o that_o be_v reprove_v or_o blame_v ●_o 2_o cor._n 2._o ●_o may_v not_o be_v swallow_v up_o with_o over_o much_o heaviness_n for_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v turn_v the_o remedy_n into_o poison_n and_o hurt_v and_o therefore_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v exhort_v we_o 6.1_o gal._n 6.1_o that_o we_o shall_v restore_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n such_o as_o be_v fall_v into_o or_o overtake_v with_o some_o fault_n 5.12_o 1._o tim._n 5.12_o and_o again_o rebuke_v not_o say_v he_o a_o elder_a unreverent_o but_o admonish_v or_o exhort_v he_o as_o a_o father_n the_o young_a man_n as_o brethren_n the_o elder_a woman_n as_o mother_n the_o young_a as_o sister_n with_o all_o pureness_n and_o chastity_n we_o must_v therefore_o moderate_v with_o gentleness_n and_o meekness_n the_o rigour_n or_o hardness_n of_o the_o discipline_n lest_o we_o hurt_v rather_o than_o profit_n but_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o spare_v any_o man_n that_o the_o correction_n must_v be_v equal_o and_o indifferent_o apply_v and_o administer_v to_o all_o they_o which_o shall_v have_v need_n thereof_o whether_o they_o be_v man_n or_o woman_n whether_o they_o be_v great_a or_o small_a whether_o they_o be_v master_n or_o servant_n whether_o they_o be_v gentleman_n or_o of_o the_o common_a sort_n we_o know_v with_o what_o earnestness_n and_o heat_n chrysostome_n be_v angry_a against_o the_o pastor_n in_o his_o time_n who_o for_o fear_n of_o great_a and_o rich_a man_n dare_v not_o reject_v or_o put_v from_o the_o supper_n any_o of_o they_o when_o they_o offer_v themselves_o thereto_o not_o before_o they_o be_v admit_v thereto_o mat._n chryso_n hom_n 3._o in_o mat._n the_o blood_n say_v he_o of_o these_o man_n shall_v be_v require_v at_o your_o hand_n if_o you_o fear_v mortal_a man_n for_o their_o greatness_n and_o riches_n very_o man_n shall_v mock_v you_o but_o if_o so_o be_v that_o you_o fear_v the_o live_a god_n he_o will_v bring_v to_o pass_v that_o even_o man_n themselves_o shall_v have_v you_o in_o honour_n and_o estimation_n and_o those_o which_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o dignity_n discipline_n a_o admonition_n to_o great_a man_n not_o to_o reject_v or_o despise_v the_o discipline_n ought_v not_o to_o refuse_v to_o submit_v themselves_o and_o to_o make_v themselves_o as_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o discipline_n and_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o refuse_v the_o correction_n of_o their_o pastor_n and_o elder_n see_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n the_o lord_n will_v set_v they_o again_o upon_o their_o foot_n after_o they_o be_v fall_v there_o be_v i_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o pride_n in_o many_o which_o hinder_v they_o from_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o discipline_n there_o be_v beside_o i_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o foolish_a and_o filthy_a shame_n which_o when_o it_o have_v once_o seize_v or_o take_v hold_n of_o they_o they_o love_v rather_o to_o continue_v in_o their_o vice_n than_o to_o be_v advertise_v or_o admonish_v thereof_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o may_v keep_v themselves_o there_o from_o but_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n be_v better_o advise_v and_o of_o a_o more_o godly_a mind_n for_o we_o read_v that_o when_o saint_n ambrose_n have_v excommunicate_v he_o theodosu_fw-la ambr._n lib._n 1._o epist_n 8._o in_o oratio_fw-la theodosu_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o much_o innocent_a blood_n which_o be_v spill_v and_o shed_v at_o his_o commandment_n he_o take_v such_o a_o censure_n in_o good_a part_n and_o so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o that_o he_o be_v stubborn_a and_o self_n will_v against_o his_o pastor_n and_o his_o elder_n to_o recoil_v back_o again_o or_o to_o with_o draw_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n that_o on_o the_o other_o side_n approve_v the_o same_o correction_n and_o censure_n he_o unclothe_v himself_o of_o his_o kingly_a ornament_n and_o open_o bewail_v his_o sin_n in_o the_o church_n he_o do_v with_o tear_n groan_n and_o sigh_n demand_v and_o ask_v forgiveness_n thereof_o certain_o this_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v or_o loose_v in_o heaven_n 18._o mat._n 18._o 18._o for_o thereby_o he_o have_v authorise_v his_o church_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o condemn_v the_o perverse_a stubborn_a and_o ungodly_a and_o by_o the_o same_o word_n to_o reconcile_v and_o receive_v to_o mercy_n all_o true_a penitent_a sinner_n which_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o restrain_v or_o hedge_v in_o to_o be_v exercise_v and_o execute_v among_o the_o common_a people_n only_o but_o also_o upon_o lord_n and_o magistrate_n whereupon_o it_o follow_v that_o none_o can_v distract_v or_o withdraw_v himself_o therefrom_o but_o he_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v the_o mean_a of_o his_o salvation_n the_o conclusion_n be_v this_o that_o see_v god_n have_v ordain_v correction_n and_o discipline_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v profit_v &_o grow_v up_o in_o his_o doctrine_n &_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v harden_v in_o our_o sin_n but_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v be_v reprove_v to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o engender_v and_o work_v in_o we_o a_o uncurable_a rottenness_n or_o infection_n it_o follow_v that_o they_o which_o fly_v and_o refuse_v the_o admonition_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v make_v and_o give_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n refuse_v god_n himself_o &_o despise_v their_o own_o salvation_n behold_v this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o have_v here_o to_o note_n and_o mark_n as_o touch_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n for_o concern_v the_o law_n which_o she_o may_v establish_v and_o set_v up_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n give_v she_o of_o god_n we_o will_v speak_v thereof_o in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v the_o fifteen_o chapter_n whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n and_o if_o she_o make_v some_o how_o far_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o obey_v she_o when_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n we_o know_v that_o some_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n under_o which_o we_o comprehend_v the_o sacrament_n also_o and_o other_o the_o discipline_n or_o policy_n and_o order_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fashion_n and_o manner_n of_o do_v the_o law_n which_o concern_v doctrine_n touch_v the_o conscience_n and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o stand_v the_o service_n &_o worship_n of_o god_n &_o our_o own_o salvation_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v all_o the_o point_n &_o article_n of_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o observe_v without_o add_v any_o thing_n thereto_o or_o diminish_v therfrom_o in_o change_v it_o
those_o which_o concern_v the_o discipline_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o order_n and_o honesty_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o church_n and_o consist_v in_o a_o manner_n &_o fashion_n of_o do_v altogether_o outward_a and_o these_o may_v a_o man_n call_v indifferent_a which_o a_o man_n may_v use_v either_o well_o or_o evil_a of_o this_o sort_n be_v ordinance_n touch_v the_o place_n the_o time_n the_o season_n &_o the_o hour_n set_v for_o preach_n &_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o celebration_n of_o marriage_n fast_n public_a prayer_n &_o such_o like_a thing_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o must_v be_v know_v that_o no_o man_n may_v appoint_v in_o the_o practice_n and_o performance_n of_o these_o matter_n the_o service_n of_o god_n or_o our_o salvation_n neither_o must_v any_o man_n think_v that_o of_o themselves_o they_o concern_v the_o conscience_n now_o the_o difference_n and_o disputation_n that_o some_o move_v and_o make_v in_o the_o church_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v not_o as_o concern_v this_o last_o kind_n of_o law_n appertein_v only_o to_o the_o discipline_n or_o policy_n so_o every_o one_o know_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n can_v want_v her_o policy_n &_o order_n and_o that_o to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v abide_v unite_v and_o tie_v together_o she_o have_v need_n of_o certain_a outward_a bond_n wherefore_o the_o church_n may_v without_o any_o difficulti_fw-la or_o doubt_n make_v law_n appertein_v only_o to_o the_o outward_a discipline_n and_o take_v they_o away_o or_o change_v they_o according_a as_o she_o shall_v judge_v they_o to_o be_v expedient_a &_o profitable_a have_v always_o special_a respect_n to_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n as_o for_o example_n the_o church_n may_v ordain_v &_o appoint_v some_o day_n of_o the_o week_n for_o public_a prayer_n whether_o the_o prayer_n be_v ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a the_o church_n also_o may_v choose_v a_o certain_a day_n or_o a_o certain_a hour_n to_o give_v thanks_n unto_o god_n when_o it_o shall_v have_v please_v he_o to_o have_v deliver_v out_o of_o some_o great_a danger_n either_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o the_o country_n or_o the_o magistrate_n or_o some_o other_o member_n place_v in_o authority_n the_o church_n also_o may_v publish_v a_o fast_n so_o often_o as_o necessity_n and_o occasion_n shall_v require_v it_o may_v take_v order_n also_o that_o baptism_n be_v minister_v at_o a_o certain_a time_n after_o the_o preach_n that_o the_o holy_a supper_n be_v celebrate_v and_o minister_v so_o often_o in_o a_o year_n and_o at_o those_o season_n which_o they_o shall_v judge_v expedient_a and_o meet_a that_o the_o as_o king_n or_o publish_v of_o the_o bane_n of_o marriage_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v proclaim_v or_o declare_v three_o several_a sunday_n and_o last_o that_o the_o say_a marriage_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v at_o the_o sermon_n or_o preach_n either_o in_o the_o morning_n or_o evening_n that_o the_o consistory_n for_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o assembly_n or_o company_n which_o have_v care_n for_o the_o poor_a assemble_v and_o meet_v together_o so_o often_o in_o a_o month_n as_o shall_v be_v find_v expedient_a and_o profitable_a wherefore_o the_o church_n may_v establish_v these_o law_n and_o other_o such_o like_a which_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o obey_v to_o the_o end_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v any_o disorder_n or_o any_o confusion_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n but_o the_o question_n be_v of_o law_n concern_v doctrine_n and_o the_o sacrament_n or_o else_o other_o law_n touch_v the_o discipline_n by_o which_o they_o will_v bind_v conscience_n &_o enclose_v and_o comprehend_v therein_o simple_o the_o service_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n thereof_o or_o no_o the_o romish_a catholic_n say_v they_o may_v and_o we_o affirm_v the_o contrary_a and_o these_o be_v their_o reason_n follow_v the_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o teach_v wherefore_o she_o have_v also_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n belong_v to_o the_o doctrine_n or_o teach_n but_o this_o argument_n may_v be_v overthrow_v in_o two_o word_n if_o we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o these_o be_v matter_n very_o much_o differ_v to_o wit_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o teach_v and_o to_o have_v authority_n to_o make_v law_n belong_v to_o the_o doctrine_n jesus_n christ_n have_v in_o deed_n give_v the_o first_o of_o these_o to_o his_o church_n but_o so_o he_o have_v not_o the_o second_o and_o as_o god_n have_v express_o forbid_v to_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o his_o law_n 12.32_o deut._n 4.2_o 12.32_o so_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v only_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v and_o receive_v of_o he_o the_o second_o reason_n the_o church_n have_v the_o use_n of_o the_o key_n &_o can_v bind_v and_o loose_v absolve_v and_o excommunicate_v wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o have_v also_o authority_n to_o establish_v law_n appertein_v to_o the_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v in_o one_o word_n that_o the_o consequence_n be_v false_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o argument_n last_o before_o go_v for_o a_o lord_n or_o ruler_n will_v in_o deed_n give_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o his_o officer_n to_o absolve_v &_o to_o condemn_v according_a to_o the_o law_n &_o ordinance_n but_o yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v for_o all_o that_o that_o he_o give_v they_o power_n of_o themselves_o to_o make_v new_a law_n over_o his_o people_n &_o to_o judge_v by_o they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o fantasy_n so_o jesus_n christ_n have_v in_o deed_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n &_o disciple_n this_o power_n to_o bind_v &_o to_o loose_v according_a to_o his_o law_n but_o this_o be_v ill_o conclude_v to_o say_v that_o therefore_o he_o have_v give_v they_o this_o power_n &_o this_o authority_n of_o themselves_o to_o make_v law_n &_o to_o establish_v they_o in_o his_o church_n and_o thereby_o to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n the_o three_o reason_n jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v 23.2.3_o mat._n 23.2.3_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n all_o therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o bid_v you_o observe_v that_o observe_v &_o do_v 13.17_o heb._n 13.17_o and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o to_o they_o wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o obey_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o keep_v and_o observe_v their_o law_n i_o answer_v that_o when_o we_o be_v command_v to_o obey_v our_o pastor_n this_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o their_o commandment_n proceed_v and_o come_v out_o of_o moses_n chair_n that_o be_v to_o say_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o lord_n protest_v and_o open_o witness_v that_o he_o be_v worship_v in_o vain_a when_o man_n set_v out_o and_o preach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o commandment_n of_o man_n 15.9_o matth._n 15.9_o and_o he_o himself_o do_v straight_o command_v we_o earnest_o to_o take_v heed_n &_o beware_v of_o the_o leaven_n of_o the_o pharise_n &_o saducee_n touch_v which_o matter_n 10._o mat._n 16.6_o august_n in_o john_n tracta_fw-la 46._o cap._n 10._o let_v we_o hear_v saint_n augustine_n the_o scribe_n say_v he_o and_o the_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n seat_n do_v that_o therefore_o which_o they_o shall_v show_v unto_o you_o for_o be_v set_v in_o the_o chair_n or_o seat_n of_o moses_n they_o teach_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o so_o god_n teach_v by_o they_o but_o if_o they_o will_v teach_v any_o thing_n of_o their_o own_o hear_v they_o not_o and_o do_v not_o that_o which_o they_o will_v say_v for_o they_o seek_v their_o own_o profit_n and_o gain_v and_o not_o christ_n profit_n in_o sum_n then_o if_o the_o church_n make_v &_o ordain_v for_o we_o commandment_n draw_v and_o take_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o receive_v they_o and_o to_o yield_v ourselves_o obedient_a thereto_o otherwise_o not_o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n duty_n to_o go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o god_n word_n in_o make_v law_n of_o her_o own_o head_n and_o authority_n &_o invent_v new_a fashion_n and_o manner_n to_o serve_v god_n by_o and_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o obedience_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v the_o very_a self_n same_o word_n of_o god_n as_o cornelius_n say_v unto_o saint_n peter_n 10.33_o acts._n 10.33_o now_o be_v we_o all_o here_o present_a before_o god_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o god_n the_o four_o reason_n we_o must_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n 10.16_o mat._n 18.17_o luke_n 10.16_o as_o we_o have_v a_o commandment_n give_v we_o
therefore_o in_o these_o place_n mat._n 18._o luk._n 10._o but_o the_o law_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o church_n voice_n wherefore_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o law_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v as_o above_o be_v answer_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n when_o it_o come_v out_o of_o moses_n chair_n and_o seat_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o her_o commandment_n shall_v be_v take_v and_o set_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o when_o also_o the_o question_n shall_v be_v of_o thing_n indifferent_a which_o she_o shall_v ordain_v and_o establish_v to_o keep_v good_a order_n &_o to_o serve_v for_o edification_n and_o the_o maintenance_n and_o uphold_v of_o the_o discipline_n for_o in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o god_n word_n and_o in_o those_o also_o which_o of_o themselves_o be_v indifferent_a but_o yet_o become_v and_o make_v evil_a through_o superstition_n to_o wit_n because_o that_o in_o they_o they_o will_v place_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o will_v think_v by_o they_o to_o deserve_v god_n grace_n and_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o these_o thing_n i_o say_v we_o ought_v not_o at_o any_o hand_n to_o obey_v 5.29_o acts._n 4.19_o 5.29_o but_o in_o such_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n we_o ought_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o obey_v god_n then_o man_n the_o five_o reason_n 27_o ester_n 9.26_o 27_o as_o in_o ester_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o beside_o the_o feast_n command_v in_o the_o law_n they_o shall_v celebrate_v every_o year_n the_o feast_n of_o lot_n which_o be_v call_v purim_n 4.59_o 1._o macha_n 4.59_o and_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o maccabee_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n call_v in_o greek_a by_o saint_n john_n 10.22_o john_n 10.22_o encaenia_fw-la so_o the_o christian_a church_n may_v well_o at_o this_o day_n ordain_v feast_n as_o shall_v seem_v unto_o she_o to_o be_v expedient_a and_o profitable_a for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o people_n as_o it_o have_v in_o time_n heretofore_o ordain_v the_o feast_n and_o holy_a day_n of_o saint_n peter_n of_o saint_n anthony_n of_o saint_n marcellus_n of_o saint_n margaret_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o likeness_n at_o all_o between_o the_o feast_n of_o purim_n or_o lot_n and_o of_o the_o dedication_n and_o these_o of_o saint_n peter_n saint_n anthony_n and_o such_o other_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o those_o two_o first_o be_v in_o former_a time_n establish_v by_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o feast_n ordain_v in_o the_o law_n but_o let_v we_o mark_v i_o pray_v you_o how_o and_o to_o what_o end_n certain_o this_o be_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n &_o to_o bring_v to_o their_o remembrance_n his_o great_a benefit_n towards_o his_o church_n that_o they_o also_o may_v give_v he_o thanks_o therefore_o for_o in_o ester_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o feast_n of_o purim_n or_o lot_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n for_o remembrance_n of_o this_o that_o the_o people_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o curse_a conspiracy_n of_o haman_n and_o judas_n machabeus_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n ordain_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n otherwise_o call_v encaenia_fw-la in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o deliveraunce_n of_o the_o people_n and_o of_o the_o repair_n and_o hallow_v again_o as_o it_o be_v of_o the_o temple_n which_o have_v be_v pollute_v by_o antiochus_n and_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o synod_n may_v ordain_v certain_a day_n and_o solemn_o keep_v they_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o people_n may_v cease_v from_o their_o own_o work_n to_o fast_o to_o pray_v unto_o god_n and_o to_o yield_v he_o thanks_n according_a as_o thing_n shall_v fall_v out_o &_o occasion_n be_v minister_v so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v without_o superstition_n idolatry_n or_o evil_a example_n but_o how_o can_v we_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o two_o feast_n aforesaid_a approve_v or_o allow_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o papacy_n or_o popedom_n first_o they_o be_v but_o two_o only_a but_o in_o the_o popedom_n there_o be_v a_o infinite_a number_n for_o what_o measure_n do_v they_o ever_o keep_v in_o the_o number_n thereof_o second_o the_o two_o above_o speak_v of_o be_v institute_v to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o at_o no_o hand_n to_o the_o name_n of_o any_o dead_a saint_n but_o these_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o name_n of_o creature_n and_o not_o to_o the_o name_n of_o god_n as_o we_o hear_v they_o call_v they_o the_o feast_n of_o s._n anthony_n of_o s._n francis_n of_o saint_n vincent_n of_o saint_n sebastian_n of_o saint_n agathon_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o so_o of_o other_o three_o those_o have_v their_o foundation_n and_o beginning_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o always_o serve_v to_o edification_n for_o they_o be_v establish_v and_o appoint_v as_o have_v be_v say_v to_o thank_v god_n &_o to_o give_v he_o praise_v for_o the_o benefit_n which_o he_o have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n these_o have_v no_o foundation_n or_o beginning_n but_o in_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n &_o serve_v to_o no_o other_o purpose_n or_o matter_n either_o more_o or_o less_o than_o the_o feast_n and_o holy_a day_n of_o the_o pagan_n and_o ethnic_n for_o wherefore_o be_v it_o that_o the_o papist_n give_v the_o name_n of_o saint_n to_o their_o festival_n day_n but_o because_o they_o mean_v to_o sanctify_v the_o say_a feast_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o those_o saint_n as_o they_o call_v they_o who_o name_n they_o bear_v and_o in_o so_o do_v do_v they_o not_o set_v up_o the_o saint_n in_o god_n place_n because_o they_o serve_v &_o give_v that_o honour_n unto_o they_o which_o appertain_v to_o he_o alone_o as_o in_o old_a time_n the_o pagan_n do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o their_o feast_n and_o divine_a service_n these_o be_v the_o principal_a reason_n upon_o which_o the_o romishe_a catholic_n ground_n themselves_o thereby_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v law_n to_o tie_v man_n conscience_n withal_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v and_o set_v down_o our_o reason_n to_o prove_v the_o contrary_n the_o first_o be_v this_o it_o be_v write_v in_o isaiah_n 33.22_o isaiah_n 33.22_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o judge_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o law_n giver_n the_o lord_n be_v our_o king_n 12._o jam._n 4._o 12._o and_o in_o saint_n james._n there_o be_v one_o law_n giver_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v whereby_o it_o be_v very_o clear_o see_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n alone_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n appertein_v to_o his_o service_n the_o second_o reason_n there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n alone_o that_o can_v institute_v and_o ordain_v a_o lawful_a service_n which_o may_v be_v agreeable_a to_o himself_o and_o acceptable_a in_o his_o sight_n for_o this_o cause_n he_o himself_o say_v 12.8.32_o deut._n 12.8.32_o you_o shall_v not_o do_v after_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o you_o do_v here_o this_o day_n that_o be_v every_o man_n whatsoever_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n but_o whatsoever_o i_o command_v you_o take_v heed_n you_o do_v it_o thou_o shall_v put_v nothing_o thereto_o nor_o take_v aught_o therefrom_o and_o in_o jeremiah_n 23._o jer._n 7.22_o 23._o i_o speak_v not_o say_v he_o unto_o your_o father_n nor_o command_v they_o when_o i_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n concern_v burn_v offering_n and_o sacrifice_n but_o this_o thing_n i_o command_v they_o say_v obey_v my_o voice_n and_o i_o will_v be_v your_o god_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o walk_v you_o in_o all_o the_o way_n which_o i_o have_v command_v you_o that_o it_o may_v be_v well_o unto_o you_o he_o say_v also_o by_o his_o prophet_n samuel_n 15.22_o 1._o sam._n 15.22_o think_v thou_o that_o the_o lord_n have_v as_o great_a pleasure_n in_o burn_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_n as_o when_o his_o voice_n be_v obey_v behold_v to_o obey_v be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o hearken_v be_v better_a than_o the_o fat_a of_o ram_n we_o may_v read_v many_o such_o or_o the_o like_a sentence_n but_o special_o this_o be_v notable_a and_o excellent_a that_o the_o son_n of_o aaron_n be_v horrible_o burn_v and_o consume_v with_o the_o fire_n which_o be_v send_v out_o from_o the_o lord_n etc._n levit._fw-la 10.1_o etc._n etc._n because_o they_o offer_v strange_a fire_n and_o which_o in_o deed_n be_v not_o command_v they_o but_o we_o add_v that_o the_o law_n which_o concern_v doctrine_n and_o by_o which_o man_n conscience_n be_v tie_v apperteine_a to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n
man_n make_v the_o plough_n continual_o to_o go_v to_o rend_v or_o cleave_v it_o &_o to_o turn_v it_o upside_o down_o therefore_o also_o saint_n paul_n say_v in_o the_o act_n 14.22_o act._n 14.22_o that_o by_o many_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 3.12_o 2._o tim._n 3.12_o and_o in_o the_o 2._o epistle_n to_o tim._n all_o those_o that_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v suffer_v persecution_n jesus_n christ_n say_v also_o unto_o his_o disciple_n 20._o john_n 15._o 20._o remember_v the_o word_n that_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o the_o servant_n be_v not_o great_a than_o his_o master_n if_o they_o have_v persecute_v i_o 2_o john_n 16.1_o 2_o they_o will_v persecute_v you_o also_o also_o these_o thing_n have_v i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v offend_v they_o shall_v excommunicate_v you_o yea_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v that_o whosoever_o kill_v you_o will_v think_v that_o he_o do_v god_n service_n and_o this_o be_v the_o state_n and_o condition_n wherein_o god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n to_o glorify_v he_o here_o below_o on_o the_o earth_n and_o in_o deed_n the_o first_o lesson_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v touch_v this_o matter_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o persecution_n 24_o ●at_a 1●_n 24_o if_o any_o man_n say_v he_o will_v come_v after_o i_o let_v he_o forsake_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n &_o follow_v i_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o time_n &_o age_n do_v sufficient_o show_v unto_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n whether_o we_o consider_v somewhat_o narrow_o as_o well_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o the_o state_n of_o that_o which_o come_v afterward_o under_o the_o new_a testament_n insomuch_o that_o it_o may_v right_o say_v 1._o psal_n 129_o 1._o they_o have_v often_o afflict_v i_o from_o my_o youth_n and_o have_v do_v i_o a_o thousand_o evil_n at_o be_v say_v in_o the_o psalm_n for_o even_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o devil_n have_v always_o be_v like_o to_o himself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o liar_n a_o murderer_n 44._o john_n 8._o 44._o envious_a and_o a_o false_a and_o privy_a accuser_n and_o war_n have_v always_o continue_v 6.14.15_o gen._n 3.15_o 2._o cor._n 6.14.15_o between_o the_o woman_n seed_n and_o the_o serpent_n seed_n and_o how_o can_v any_o man_n join_v and_o put_v together_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a nature_n how_o can_v any_o man_n make_v agreement_n between_o god_n and_o the_o devil_n between_o christ_n and_o belial_n between_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o unbeliever_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o 3._o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n show_v a_o reason_n to_o declare_v why_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o good_a and_o the_o wicked_a shall_v suffer_v one_o with_o another_o &_o agree_v together_o 19.20_o joh._n ●_o 19.20_o to_o wit_n that_o all_o the_o work_n which_o the_o world_n do_v be_v wicked_a and_o therefore_o lest_o they_o shall_v be_v discover_v and_o lay_v open_a by_o the_o light_n it_o hate_v the_o light_n and_o love_v darkness_n from_o hence_o be_v it_o that_o even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n enmity_n between_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n have_v take_v and_o have_v their_o original_n and_o first_o foundation_n this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o cain_n slay_v his_o brother_n abel_n that_o lot_n the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v hate_v of_o the_o sodomite_n that_o ishmael_n mock_v isaac_n and_o persecute_v he_o that_o esau_n go_v about_o to_o oppress_v and_o kill_v jacob_n even_o from_o his_o youth_n that_o joseph_n have_v his_o own_o brethren_n for_o his_o enemy_n that_o the_o prophet_n can_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o wicked_a king_n nor_o saint_n john_n baptist_n with_o the_o incestuous_a herode_fw-la nor_o jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z and_o pharisee_n nor_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n with_o the_o infidel_n and_o unbeliever_n of_o their_o time_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v mere_a folly_n to_o suppose_v and_o think_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n can_v ever_o be_v belove_v of_o the_o world_n whereupon_o by_o good_a right_n and_o for_o good_a cause_n saint_n james_n say_v 4.4_o james._n 4.4_o that_o the_o amity_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o enmity_n of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o will_v be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o world_n make_v himself_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n also_o 15.19_o john_n 15.19_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v to_o his_o disciple_n if_o you_o be_v of_o this_o world_n the_o world_n will_v love_v his_o own_o but_o because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o i_o have_v choose_v and_o separate_v you_o out_o of_o this_o world_n therefore_o the_o world_n hate_v you_o to_o be_v short_a if_o we_o will_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v without_o persecution_n they_o of_o necessity_n must_v it_o be_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v without_o hatred_n the_o devil_n without_o envy_n and_o our_o nature_n without_o vice_n or_o sin_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v specify_v and_o declare_v cetaine_v thing_n church_n a_o discourse_n of_o the_o ten_o great_a persecution_n of_o the_o church_n touch_v the_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o examine_v as_o it_o be_v one_o by_o one_o the_o ten_o persecution_n which_o come_v upon_o it_o after_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n under_o the_o emperor_n whereof_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n make_v mention_v true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o augustus_n the_o second_o emperor_n the_o church_n be_v much_o persecute_v under_o the_o great_a herode_fw-la who_o think_v to_o put_v to_o death_n the_o king_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o very_a cradle_n command_v man_n to_o slay_v all_o the_o babe_n and_o little_a child_n of_o bethelehem_n and_o of_o all_o the_o border_n thereof_o from_o two_o year_n old_a and_o under_o also_o under_o tiberius_n the_o three_o emperor_n by_o herode_fw-la antipas_n the_o tetrarch_n of_o galilee_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o first_o herode_fw-la who_o take_v away_o his_o brother_n phillip_n wife_n and_o put_v to_o death_n john_n baptist_n because_o he_o reprove_v he_o for_o that_o sin_n and_o offence_n and_o by_o pilate_n also_o who_o condemn_v and_o cause_v to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n jesus_n christ_n the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z pharise_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o principal_a blower_n of_o the_o fire_n &_o chief_a persecutor_n moreover_o under_o caius_n caligula_n that_o horrible_a monster_n who_o be_v appoint_v the_o four_o emperor_n in_o the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o year_n after_o christ_n birth_n and_o reign_v three_o year_n ten_o month_n and_o eight_o day_n and_o under_o claudius_n also_o his_o successor_n and_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n and_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n how_o the_o church_n be_v toss_v and_o persecute_v in_o asia_n antiochia_n pisidia_n iconium_n lystra_n galatia_n ephesus_n macedonia_n phillippi_n thessalonia_n corinthus_n berrhoe_n rome_n and_o many_o other_o place_n but_o all_o these_o persecution_n be_v as_o yet_o particular_a and_o but_o in_o some_o one_o place_n or_o other_o god_n moderate_v and_o mitigate_a the_o heart_n and_o hand_n of_o man_n and_o govern_v after_o a_o wonderful_a sort_n his_o church_n in_o those_o emperor_n day_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v more_o bless_o and_o plentiful_o grow_v but_o omit_v these_o let_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o ten_o great_a and_o general_a persecution_n as_o they_o be_v call_v by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v eager_o assault_v and_o cruel_o torment_v on_o all_o side_n the_o first_o persecution_n be_v under_o nero_n the_o sixth_o emperor_n who_o be_v call_v claudius_n domitius_n nero._n he_o be_v ordain_v emperor_n in_o the_o year_n 57_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n and_o reign_v xiiii_o year_n seven_o month_n and_o certain_a day_n and_o some_o say_v that_o the_o five_o first_o year_n he_o be_v a_o good_a man_n but_o that_o afterwards_o he_o so_o disorder_v himself_o and_o fall_v into_o such_o excess_n by_o incest_n murder_n and_o all_o manner_n of_o wickedness_n that_o hardly_o there_o be_v as_o yet_o any_o other_o emperor_n to_o be_v find_v who_o be_v defile_v with_o such_o filthiness_n tertullian_n rehearse_v in_o his_o apologetico_fw-la 5._o tertul._n apolog_fw-la cap._n 5._o that_o this_o emperor_n be_v the_o first_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n look_v say_v he_o into_o your_o history_n and_o register_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o nero_n be_v the_o first_o which_o exercise_v cruelty_n against_o the_o christian_n which_o be_v under_o the_o emperor_n authority_n and_o principal_o against_o the_o church_n which_o be_v
first_o and_o foremost_a because_o our_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o 2._o isaia_n 59_o 1._o 2._o behold_v say_v the_o prophet_n the_o lord_n hand_n be_v not_o shorten_v that_o it_o can_v save_v neither_o his_o ear_n heavy_a that_o it_o can_v hear_v but_o your_o iniquity_n have_v separate_v between_o you_o and_o your_o god_n and_o your_o sin_n have_v hide_v his_o face_n from_o you_o that_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v second_o because_o that_o serve_v for_o the_o advauncement_n of_o god_n his_o glory_n and_o for_o the_o augment_v and_o increase_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o be_v write_v touch_v the_o sickness_n and_o death_n of_o lazarus_n the_o brother_n of_o martha_n and_o marie_n 15._o john_n 11.14_o 15._o this_o sickness_n say_v jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o to_o death_n but_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v thereby_o and_o afterwards_o lazarus_n be_v dead_a say_v he_o and_o i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o that_o you_o may_v believe_v and_o to_o this_o last_o point_n be_v refer_v that_o which_o s._n paul_n say_v we_o receive_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n in_o ourselves_o 1.9_o 2._o cor._n 1.9_o because_o we_o shall_v not_o trust_v in_o ourselves_o but_o in_o god_n which_o raise_v the_o dead_a the_o five_o point_n that_o affliction_n and_o danger_n increase_v even_o then_o when_o the_o deliverance_n be_v nigh_o example_n hereof_o be_v set_v out_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o israelite_n be_v marvellous_o torment_v in_o egypt_n all_o the_o while_n that_o they_o be_v keep_v captive_n and_o prisoner_n there_o throughout_o exod._n 14._o throughout_o but_o they_o never_o have_v so_o great_a a_o occasion_n to_o feat_n neither_o be_v they_o at_o any_o time_n so_o press_v yea_o oppress_a as_o when_o god_n bring_v they_o out_o of_o their_o captivity_n and_o bondage_n to_o make_v they_o pass_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n and_o to_o guide_v they_o in_o the_o wilderness_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o foureteen_v chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la david_n before_o he_o come_v to_o the_o enjoy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v promise_v he_o by_o god_n etc._n 1._o sam._n 27._o 1_o etc._n etc._n be_v constrain_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o country_n and_o to_o seek_v a_o place_n of_o refuge_n and_o comfort_n amongst_o the_o philistine_n his_o enemis_fw-fr yea_o in_o the_o court_n of_o king_n achish_n throughout_o isaih_n 37._o throughout_o where_o he_o find_v himself_o in_o extreme_a danger_n yea_o more_o great_a then_o at_o any_o time_n before_o he_o have_v escape_v then_o be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n send_v from_o he_o to_o remove_v the_o siege_n of_o zennacherib_n from_o before_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o deliver_v king_n ezekias_n and_o the_o people_n which_o be_v within_o when_o for_o the_o great_a oppression_n thereof_o they_o be_v hold_v &_o keep_v in_o so_o narrow_o &_o short_a that_o they_o be_v at_o the_o point_n or_o very_o nigh_o to_o see_v the_o city_n render_v and_o deliver_v to_o the_o assyrian_n pity_n etc._n mark_n 6.47_o etc._n etc._n and_o mercy_n jesus_n christ_n do_v very_o well_o behold_v that_o his_o disciple_n be_v in_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o ship_n which_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o the_o outrage_n or_o violence_n of_o the_o wind_n and_o tempest_n but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o come_v not_o unto_o they_o to_o succour_v they_o but_o about_o the_o four_o watch_n of_o the_o night_n wherefore_o let_v we_o not_o loose_v our_o courage_n and_o stomach_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n and_o affliction_n which_o can_v come_v for_o when_o all_o the_o mean_n of_o help_n and_o aid_v on_o man_n side_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o do_v fail_v we_o and_o that_o it_o seem_v that_o all_o be_v do_v with_o we_o and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v altogether_o wear_v out_o consume_v and_o beat_v down_o even_o then_o will_v god_n perform_v his_o own_o work_n he_o alone_o succour_v we_o to_o the_o end_n that_o unto_o he_o alone_o also_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o deliverance_n may_v be_v whole_o and_o absolute_o refer_v the_o sixth_o point_n that_o god_n through_o his_o power_n keep_v and_o defend_v his_o church_n against_o the_o violence_n &_o assault_n of_o tyrant_n and_o persecutor_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n when_o time_n be_v therefore_o thereto_o tend_v and_o belong_v these_o promise_n the_o lord_n know_v to_o deliver_v the_o godly_a out_o of_o temptation_n 2.9_o 2._o pet._n 2.9_o &_o to_o reserve_v the_o unjust_a until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v for_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o needy_a 5._o psal_n 12._o 5._o and_o for_o the_o sigh_n of_o the_o poor_a i_o will_v up_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o will_v set_v at_o liberty_n he_o who_o the_o wicked_a have_v snare_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n pitch_v round_o about_o they_o 19.20.22_o psal_n 34.7.17_o 19.20.22_o that_o fear_v he_o and_o deliver_v they_o the_o righteous_a cry_n and_o the_o lord_n hear_v they_o &_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o all_o their_o trouble_n great_a be_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o righteous_a but_o the_o lord_n deliver_v he_o out_o of_o they_o all_o he_o keep_v all_o his_o bone_n not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v break_v the_o lord_n redeem_v the_o soul_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o none_o that_o trust_v in_o he_o shall_v perish_v call_v upon_o i_o say_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n 14.15_o psal_n 50._o 15._o psal_n 9_o 14.15_o so_o will_v i_o deliver_v thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v glorify_v i_o and_o again_o because_o he_o have_v love_v i_o therefore_o will_v i_o deliver_v he_o i_o will_v exalt_v he_o because_o he_o have_v know_v my_o name_n he_o shall_v call_v upon_o i_o and_o i_o will_v hear_v he_o i_o will_v be_v with_o he_o in_o trouble_n i_o will_v deliver_v he_o and_o glorify_v he_o 125.2_o psal_n 125.2_o as_o the_o mountain_n be_v about_o jerusalem_n so_o be_v the_o lord_n about_o his_o people_n from_o hence_o forth_o and_o for_o ever_o 16.18_o mat._n 16.18_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v it_o 12.32_o luke_n 12.32_o fear_v not_o little_a flock_n for_o it_o be_v your_o father_n pleasure_n to_o give_v you_o the_o kingdom_n 5.19_o exod._n 14._o throughout_o dan._n 3._o daniel_n 6._o throughout_o isaiah_n 37._o throughout_o acts._n 12.7_o act_n 5.19_o and_o we_o have_v many_o example_n hereof_o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o when_o god_n bring_v the_o israelite_n out_o of_o egypt_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o deliver_v daniel_n out_o of_o the_o lion_n den_n and_o shadtach_v meshach_n &_o abednego_n out_o of_o the_o burn_a flame_n and_o oven_n when_o he_o deliver_v from_o death_n susanna_n already_o condemn_v when_o he_o set_v jerusalem_n at_o liberty_n when_o he_o bring_v saint_n peter_n out_o of_o prison_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o at_o this_o day_n although_o we_o see_v not_o angel_n visible_o round_o about_o we_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o we_o cease_v not_o by_o experience_n to_o feel_v god_n aid_n and_o succour_n and_o that_o after_o many_o sort_n yea_o extraordinary_a we_o know_v also_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o zacharias_n 2.8_o zacha._n 2.8_o to_o wit_n he_o that_o touch_v you_o shall_v touch_v the_o apple_n of_o my_o eye_n say_v the_o lord_n for_o indeed_o jesus_n christ_n account_v the_o persecution_n which_o man_n bend_v against_o his_o church_n as_o bend_v against_o his_o very_o own_o person_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o reproof_n that_o he_o give_v saint_n paul_n say_v saul_n saul_n 4.9_o acts._n 4.9_o wherefore_o do_v thou_o persecute_v i_o who_o will_v ever_o have_v look_v for_o such_o assistance_n and_o help_n as_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o church_n in_o our_o time_n be_v there_o at_o any_o time_n more_o furious_a and_o rage_a persecution_n be_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n church_n ever_o great_a they_o spare_v not_o wisdom_n nor_o counsel_n nor_o power_n nor_o diligence_n nor_o man_n nor_o money_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o poor_a church_n may_v be_v altogether_o cast_v down_o and_o make_v ruinous_a but_o behold_v the_o prudencie_n the_o counsel_n the_o might_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v far_o above_o all_o that_o which_o set_v itself_o against_o his_o greatness_n yea_o he_o work_v miraculous_o by_o hide_a close_a and_o secret_a mean_n insomuch_o that_o all_o the_o height_n of_o the_o world_n be_v confound_v &_o overthrow_v for_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v there_o be_v no_o wisdom_n neither_o
mouth_n that_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v to_o keep_v no_o not_o a_o little_a dog_n of_o a_o naughty_a race_n or_o kind_n afterwards_o all_o those_o favourer_n which_o be_v join_v with_o he_o &_o all_o those_o which_o have_v be_v his_o familiar_a friend_n and_o acquaintance_n be_v slay_v draw_v up_o and_o down_o and_o cast_v into_o the_o iake_n and_o privy_n concern_v the_o emperor_n decius_n behold_v that_o which_o we_o find_v of_o his_o end_n nauclerus_fw-la decius_n nauclerus_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la rehearse_v that_o he_o be_v drown_v &_o that_o his_o body_n be_v never_o find_v pomponius_n have_v write_v pomponius_n pomponius_n that_o in_o a_o wicked_a war_n against_o the_o goth_n he_o be_v swallow_v up_o of_o a_o whirl_n pool_n into_o which_o he_o throw_v himself_o headlong_o to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v not_o fall_v into_o his_o enemy_n hand_n tem_fw-la fascicul_n tem_fw-la fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la say_v that_o he_o be_v slay_v in_o war_n and_o his_o son_n also_o which_o also_o be_v in_o like_a sort_n put_v down_o and_o set_v forth_o by_o eusebius_n say_v that_o before_o he_o have_v reign_v two_o year_n 1._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 1._o he_o be_v miserable_o slay_v together_o with_o his_o child_n the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n likewise_o horrible_a be_v declare_v in_o &_o against_o valerian_n valerianus_n valerianus_n punish_v he_o for_o the_o christian_n blood_n which_o be_v spill_v by_o his_o appointment_n &_o commandment_n for_o we_o read_v in_o the_o xxiii_o book_n of_o volateranus_fw-la &_o in_o other_o history_n writer_n 23._o volat._n lib._n 23._o that_o he_o a_o little_a before_o he_o begin_v to_o persecute_v the_o christian_n go_v to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o persian_n and_o that_o in_o battle_n he_o be_v take_v by_o sapores_fw-la the_o king_n of_o the_o say_a persian_n who_o handle_v he_o so_o uncourteous_o &_o entreat_v he_o so_o chourlish_o that_o so_o often_o as_o this_o king_n sapores_fw-la will_v get_v upon_o horseback_n he_o use_v the_o back_n of_o this_o poor_a slave_n to_o help_v he_o to_o mount_v up_o and_o so_o this_o emperor_n spend_v his_o old_a age_n in_o this_o so_o miserable_a servitude_n &_o bondage_n eusebius_n in_o the_o oration_n or_o sermon_n which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o saint_n euseb_n euseb_n say_v that_o sapores_fw-la at_o the_o last_o cause_v valerian_n to_o be_v fley_v and_o these_o be_v his_o word_n and_o thou_o also_o valerian_n because_o thou_o do_v exercise_v so_o great_a cruelty_n of_o murder_n against_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n have_v be_v declare_v on_o thou_o when_o be_v captive_a and_o bind_v and_o lead_v with_o thy_o imperial_a ornament_n have_v at_o the_o last_o thy_o skin_n pull_v off_o by_o the_o commandment_n of_o sapores_fw-la king_n of_o the_o persian_n and_o salt_v thou_o have_v set_v up_o somewhat_o as_o a_o perpetual_a remembrance_n of_o thy_o wickedness_n 27._o henric._n erdford_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 27._o some_o say_v that_o claudius_n valerius_n his_o lieutenant_n be_v possess_v with_o a_o devil_n &_o that_o his_o tongue_n be_v cut_v out_o of_o his_o head_n &_o chap_v in_o piece_n and_o tha●_n at_o the_o last_o he_o be_v choke_v aurelian_a aurelian_a aurelian_a be_v not_o exempt_v from_o god_n punishment_n for_o as_o he_o begin_v his_o persecution_n against_o the_o christian_n a_o thunderbolt_n fall_v nigh_o unto_o he_o wherewith_o he_o be_v sodeine_o afraid_a as_o we_o have_v say_v heretofore_o but_o he_o become_v not_o the_o better_a for_o that_o wherefore_o pursue_v his_o enterprise_n and_o attempt_v soon_o after_o he_o be_v slay_v by_o his_o own_o people_n go_v the_o second_o time_n to_o war_n against_o the_o illyrian_n and_o this_o be_v do_v between_o constantinople_n and_o heracleas_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 272._o some_o affirm_v also_o of_o his_o lievetenaunt_n antiochus_n 20._o henri_fw-fr erdford_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 20._o that_o while_o they_o be_v torment_v agapitus_n the_o martyr_n he_o sudden_o fall_v from_o his_o seat_n where_o he_o sit_v in_o judgement_n cry_v as_o though_o he_o despair_v that_o he_o burn_v in_o his_o bowel_n &_o that_o he_o die_v cry_v out_o after_o that_o sort_n dioclesian_n and_o maximianus_n herculien_n maximianus_n diocletian_n &_o maximianus_n have_v reign_v twenty_o year_n together_o and_o very_o much_o torment_v the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o ten_o persecution_n which_o they_o move_v against_o it_o at_o the_o last_o come_v to_o so_o great_a a_o change_n and_o alteration_n of_o their_o state_n and_o condition_n and_o to_o such_o wilfulness_n and_o madness_n both_o two_o of_o they_o that_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o history_n for_o despite_n which_o they_o have_v against_o christ_n 23._o nicepho_n lib._n 7._o cap._n 20._o euseb_n lib._n 8._o cap._n 13._o volatera_n lib._n 23._o because_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o establish_v and_o blot_v out_o his_o name_n be_v let_v by_o the_o constancy_n courage_n and_o may_v of_o the_o noble_a martyr_n they_o depose_v themselves_o from_o the_o empire_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o government_n of_o galerius_n and_o constantius_n diocletian_n withdraw_v himself_o to_o nicomedia_n and_o maximianus_n to_o milan_n and_o both_o of_o they_o afterward_o live_v as_o private_a man_n diocletian_n live_v certain_a year_n after_o but_o at_o the_o last_o have_v receive_v threaten_v letter_n from_o constantine_n and_o licinius_n because_o he_o will_v not_o be_v at_o a_o marriage_n banquet_n or_o feast_n they_o have_v also_o invite_v and_o bid_v he_o thereto_o and_o fear_v a_o shameful_a death_n he_o drink_v poison_n and_o die_v when_o he_o be_v seventie_o three_o year_n old_a this_o be_v recite_v and_o report_v by_o the_o roman_a historiographer_n themselves_o aurelius_n volateranus_fw-la aurelius_n victor_n pomp._n laetus_n volateranus_fw-la victor_n and_o pomponius_n laetus_n volateran_n and_o certain_a other_o say_v that_o after_o his_o death_n he_o be_v deify_v that_o be_v to_o say_v put_z placed_z and_o establish_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o go_n croni_fw-la naucler_n vespergensis_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la croni_fw-la and_o as_o concern_v maximianus_n heculien_n the_o history_n writer_n say_v that_o maxentius_n his_o son_n have_v be_v ordain_v create_v and_o call_v emperor_n at_o rome_n the_o father_n take_v courage_n to_o he_o again_o and_o purpose_v in_o his_o mind_n to_o recover_v the_o empire_n from_o which_o he_o have_v depose_v himself_o together_o with_o diocletian_n in_o this_o hope_n he_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o assay_v all_o the_o power_n he_o have_v to_o put_v down_o and_o cast_v out_o his_o son_n but_o he_o be_v drive_v back_o and_o withstand_v by_o the_o city_n and_o go_v from_o thence_o towards_o constantine_n his_o son_n in_o law_n think_v to_o come_v upon_o he_o at_o unwares_o to_o catch_v he_o by_o treason_n and_o so_o to_o kill_v he_o but_o his_o treason_n be_v discover_v he_o flee_v away_o and_o be_v pursue_v he_o be_v slay_v by_o constantine_n nigh_o unto_o marsilles_n 2_o vincentius_n in_o spec_fw-la li._n 13._o cap._n 2._o mars_n hist_o 2_o as_o vincentius_n recite_v it_o in_o his_o mirror_n or_o glass_n the_o thirteen_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n notwithstanding_o that_o book_n which_o be_v call_v the_o sea_n of_o history_n say_v that_o be_v take_v at_o the_o forename_a marsilles_n he_o there_o hang_v himself_o with_o a_o halter_n be_v threscore_a year_n old_a behold_v a_o summarie_n and_o short_a description_n of_o the_o horrible_a punishemente_n which_o the_o lord_n send_v upon_o the_o ten_o emperor_n under_o who_o and_o in_o who_o day_n the_o ten_o great_a persecution_n against_o the_o church_n fall_v out_o and_o be_v commit_v now_o as_o the_o emperor_n which_o succeed_v those_o do_v not_o all_o withhold_v themselves_o from_o persecute_v the_o poor_a christian_n so_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n be_v not_o shorten_v but_o that_o punishment_n and_o vengeance_n be_v execute_v upon_o the_o persecutor_n for_o that_o which_o saint_n cyprian_a say_v in_o the_o apology_n or_o defence_n he_o make_v against_o demetrianus_n the_o governor_n demetrianun_n cyprian_a contra_fw-la demetrianun_n be_v very_o true_a to_o wit_n that_o very_o hardly_o there_o be_v any_o man_n at_o any_o time_n who_o through_o wickedness_n lift_v up_o himself_o against_o the_o christian_n but_o that_o incontinent_o thereupon_o god_n vengeance_n and_o justice_n follow_v he_o &_o pursue_v he_o therefore_o 23._o galerius_n ●later_n lib._n 23._o galerius_n a_o cruel_a emperor_n or_o rather_o in_o deed_n a_o tyrant_n have_v very_o well_o try_v and_o prove_v the_o same_o for_o have_v continue_v and_o increase_v the_o persecution_n begin_v by_o diocletian_n and_o have_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o punishment_n torment_v the_o christian_n both_o cruel_o and_o furious_o at_o the_o last_o have_v reign_v thirteen_o year_n not_o be_v able_a to_o abide_v the_o torment_n and_o
a_o moment_n and_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n make_v they_o to_o fall_v backward_o to_o the_o earth_n yea_o and_o cast_v they_o headlong_o to_o the_o depth_n or_o bottom_n of_o hell_n o_o that_o tyrant_n &_o persecutor_n will_v think_v well_o of_o these_o matter_n but_o what_o what_o shall_v a_o man_n do_v to_o hard_a heart_n and_o to_o blind_a eye_n the_o wicked_a become_v more_o proud_a through_o the_o prosperity_n which_o they_o have_v in_o this_o world_n as_o though_o that_o no_o punishment_n for_o their_o cruelty_n be_v perpare_v for_o they_o it_o fare_v with_o they_o as_o with_o dionysius_n the_o tyrant_n who_o after_o he_o have_v spoil_v and_o rob_v a_o temple_n go_v to_o the_o sea_n and_o see_v he_o have_v a_o good_a wind_n begin_v to_o say_v that_o the_o god_n favour_v church_n robber_n or_o spoiler_n of_o temple_n so_o likewise_o these_o man_n when_o they_o behode_n that_o their_o offence_n remain_v unpunished_a and_o that_o their_o villainy_n and_o wickedness_n be_v not_o correct_v immediate_o they_o give_v themselves_o over_o to_o work_v wickedness_n outrageous_o and_o to_o conclude_v in_o their_o carnal_a and_o fleshly_a understanding_n that_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n of_o god_n at_o all_o and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o punishment_n ready_a and_o prepare_v for_o their_o iniquity_n but_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v and_o pronounce_v the_o quite_o and_o clean_o contrary_a so_o ordinary_a and_o common_a experience_n of_o the_o example_n of_o god_n wrath_n do_v sufficient_o show_v unto_o we_o that_o when_o god_n spare_v the_o wicked_a persecutor_n of_o his_o people_n for_o a_o time_n and_o make_v as_o though_o he_o seem_v not_o to_o look_v upon_o their_o extortion_n outrage_n and_o violence_n it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o be_v favourable_a unto_o they_o neither_o because_o he_o reach_v they_o his_o hand_n and_o help_v they_o for_o it_o can_v otherwise_o be_v but_o that_o one_o day_n as_o he_o be_v a_o just_a judge_n he_o will_v give_v unto_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o good_a and_o salvation_n of_o his_o child_n such_o recompense_n and_o hire_v as_o they_o shall_v have_v deserve_v first_o in_o this_o life_n if_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o they_o may_v shameful_o and_o wicked_o end_v their_o day_n and_o afterwards_o in_o the_o other_o world_n that_o they_o may_v utter_o perish_v if_o they_o repent_v and_o amend_v not_o in_o this_o life_n and_o may_v be_v torment_v eternal_o in_o hell_n fire_n where_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o weep_v and_o wail_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n finis_fw-la ¶_o a_o table_n contain_v the_o principal_a matter_n handle_v in_o this_o present_a book_n a_o affliction_n and_o the_o cause_n thereof_o pag._n 333._o etc._n etc._n affliction_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 274._o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o end_n which_o god_n respect_v therein_o pag._n 340._o etc._n etc._n affliction_n of_o the_o church_n increase_v when_o the_o deliverance_n thereof_o be_v high_a pag._n 325._o affliction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v always_o order_v and_o govern_v by_o god_n hand_n pag._n 321._o affliction_n come_v not_o without_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n pag._n 318._o affliction_n &_o their_o issue_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o faithful_a pag._n 345._o affliction_n and_o their_o issue_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o persecutor_n pag._n 357._o ancient_n pag._n 133._o antiochus_n pag._n 359._o apostle_n pag._n 128._o archbishop_n pag._n 69_o 144._o aurelian_a pag._n 304._o 372._o augustine_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 222._o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o pope_n pag._n 92._o etc._n etc._n b_o baptism_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n pag._n 115._o bishop_n pag._n 69._o 133._o 143._o bishop_n universal_a be_v a_o title_n of_o antichrist_n when_o it_o be_v give_v to_o man_n pag._n 94._o c_o call_v see_v vocation_n cardinal_n pag._n 146._o censure_n pag._n 247._o censure_n three_o end_n thereof_o pag._n 252._o censure_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v apply_v with_o out_o respect_n of_o person_n pag._n 255._o chaplain_n pag._n 140._o counsel_n pag._n 202._o consistory_n pag._n 241._o correction_n and_o censure_n pag._n 257._o curate_n pag._n 142._o church_n whence_o it_o come_v pag._n 2._o church_n how_o many_o way_n take_v pag._n 2._o church_n which_o be_v true_a have_v two_o susbstantiall_a mark_n pag._n 15._o church_n and_o her_o continuance_n pag._n 55._o church_n and_o her_o head_n be_v jesus_n christ_n alone_o pag._n 68_o church_n and_o her_o holiness_n pag._n 184._o church_n compare_v to_o a_o palm_n tree_n roses_z lily_n and_o to_o a_o vine_n pag._n 332._o old_a church_n of_o rome_n what_o a_o one_o it_o be_v according_a to_o ter_n tullian_n his_o judgement_n pag._n 106._o church_n catholic_a be_v one_o alone_o pag._n 11._o church_n catholic_a and_o invisible_a what_o it_o be_v pag._n 7_o church_n distinguish_v into_o three_o sort_n pag._n 4._o church_n in_o what_o sense_n call_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n pag._n 200._o church_n in_o what_o sense_n say_v to_o be_v without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n pag._n 189._o church_n whether_o above_o the_o scripture_n pag._n 213._o church_n whether_o more_o old_a than_o the_o scripture_n pag._n 220._o church_n must_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o great_a number_n pag._n 58._o church_n whether_o it_o may_v err_v pag._n 197._o church_n why_o call_v catholic_a pag._n 9_o church_n why_o say_v to_o be_v invisible_a pag._n 12._o church_n represent_v by_o a_o bright_a lamp_n or_o fire_n brand_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o burn_a or_o smoke_v furnace_n pag._n 330._o church_n represent_v by_o the_o burn_a bush_n pag._n 330._o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n pag._n 19_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n pag._n 102._o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o true_a unity_n pag._n 113._o church_n increase_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o persecution_n pag._n 330._o church_n visible_a what_o it_o be_v pag._n 14._o d_o decius_n pag._n 299._o 370._o deacon_n pag._n 136._o diaconiss_n pag._n 244._o dioclesian_n pag._n 305._o 373._o discipline_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n pag._n 235._o discipline_n incroch_v nothing_o upon_o the_o magistrate_n pag._n 237._o doctor_n pag._n 132._o domitian_n pag._n 283._o 365._o donation_n of_o constantine_n to_o silvester_n pag._n 87._o e_o evangelistes_n pag._n 130._o excommunication_n &_o 3_o end_n thereof_o pag._n 235._o exposition_n of_o scripture_n and_o two_o principle_n necessary_a therein_o pag._n 20._o elder_n pag._n 135._o g_o galerius_n pag._n 376._o galen_n pag._n 30●_n god_n deliver_v his_o church_n out_o of_o affliction_n when_o it_o be_v time_n pag._n 327._o god_n why_o he_o afflict_v rather_o his_o church_n then_o other_o people_n pag._n 319._o god_n why_o he_o send_v not_o succour_v to_o his_o church_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v afflict_v pag._n 323._o h_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v jesus_n christ_n alone_o pag._n 68_o herode_fw-la agrippa_n pag._n 362._o herode_fw-la antipas_n pag._n 392._o herode_fw-la the_o great_a pag._n 360._o high_a or_o chief_a bishop_n pag._n 97._o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n unperfect_a pag._n 187._o i_o ignorance_n excuse_v not_o pag._n 125._o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la pag._n 313._o 377._o k_o key_n in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o pag._n 79._o l_o law_n ecclesiastical_a pag._n 258._o m_o marcus_n aurelius_n pag._n 293._o 35●_n maximianus_n herculien_n pag._n 305._o 373._o maximinus_n pag._n 297_o 369._o metropolitanes_n pag._n 69._o 144._o 149._o ministry_n and_o how_o much_o shall_v be_v give_v thereto_o pag._n 179._o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n ordain_v by_o god_n for_o our_o weakness_n sake_n pag._n 177._o ministry_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n pag._n 160._o minister_n consider_v after_o two_o sort_n pag._n 180._o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o degree_n or_o order_n pag._n 128._o miracle_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o call_n pag._n 53._o multitude_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o church_n pag._n 58._o n_o nero._n pag._n 184._o 364._o o_o order_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o clergy_n pag._n 139._o p_o pope_n pag._n 79._o 152._o pope_n and_o his_o blasphemy_n pag._n 75._o pope_n two_o at_o rome_n at_o one_o time_n pag._n 91._o pastor_n pag._n 131._o patriarch_n pag._n 69._o 149._o paul_n shall_v rather_o be_v take_v for_o pope_n then_o saint_n peter_n pag._n 100_o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 274._o persecution_n of_o the_o church_n ten_o great_a and_o general_a and_o a_o discourse_n thereof_o pag._n 279._o persecution_n come_v not_o without_o god_n providence_n pag._n 318._o persecution_n the_o first_o under_o nero._n pag._n 283._o persecution_n the_o second_o under_o domitian_n pag._n 283._o persecution_n the_o three_o under_o trajan_n pag._n 284._o persecution_n the_o four_o under_o marcus_n aurelius_n pag._n 293._o persecution_n the_o five_o under_o severus_n pag._n 296._o persecution_n the_o sixth_o under_o julian_n maximinus_n pag._n 298._o persecution_n the_o seven_o under_o decius_n pag._n 299._o persecution_n the_o eight_o under_o valerian_n and_o galen_n pag._n 302._o persecution_n the_o nienth_n under_o aurelian_a pag._n 304._o persecution_n the_o ten_o under_o dioclesian_n and_o maximianus_n pag._n 305_o pharaoh_n pag._n 358._o peter_n whether_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v uncertain_a pag._n 98._o peter_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 71._o pilate_n pag._n 363._o pontifex_n or_o high_a bishop_n pag._n 97._o predecessor_n of_o we_o who_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n whether_o save_v or_o condemn_v pag._n 126._o priest_n pag._n 140._o prophet_n pag._n 129._o parson_n pag._n 158._o s_o sabaoth_n change_v to_o the_o sunday_n pag._n 228._o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unperfect_a pag._n 18●_n sanctification_n how_o wrought_v in_o us._n pag._n 186._o sanctification_n and_o three_o degree_n of_o it_o pag._n 169._o saint_n in_o what_o sense_n we_o be_v call_v pag._n 185._o sennacherib_n pag._n 358._o severus_n pag._n 296._o 269._o succession_n and_o three_o sort_n thereof_o pag._n 26._o succession_n to_o what_o end_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n use_v a_o argument_n take_v therefrom_o pag._n 28._o succession_n personal_a have_v some_o time_n have_v a_o breach_n in_o the_o seat_n of_o rome_n pag._n 35._o succession_n and_o call_n of_o person_n pag._n 24._o t_o trajan_n 284_o 356._o teacher_n pag._n 132._o v_o valens_n the_o emperor_n pag._n 314._o 378_o valerian_n pag._n 362._o 371._o vicar_n pag._n 140._o unity_n in_o verity_n be_v not_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n pag._n 113_o vocation_n of_o pastor_n three_o thing_n necessary_a therein_o pag._n 39_o vocation_n ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a pag._n 47._o finis_fw-la ☜_o imprint_v at_o london_n at_o the_o three_o crane_n in_o the_o vintree_n by_o thomas_n dawson_n for_o thomas_n ●●an_z 1582._o